TWELVE years had passed
since I had laid the body of my great-uncle, Captain John Carter, of Virginia,
away from the sight of men in that strange mausoleum in the old cemetery at
Richmond.
Often had I pondered on
the odd instructions he had left me governing the construction of his mighty
tomb, and especially those parts which directed that he be laid in an open
casket and that the ponderous mechanism which controlled the bolts of the
vault's huge door be accessible only from the inside.
Twelve years had passed
since I had read the remarkable manuscript of this remarkable man; this man who
remembered no childhood and who could not even offer a vague guess as to his
age; who was always young and yet who had dandled my grandfather's
great-grandfather upon his knee; this man who had spent ten years upon the
planet Mars; who had fought for the green men of Barsoom and fought against
them; who had fought for and against the red men and who had won the ever
beautiful Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, for his wife, and for nearly ten
years had been a prince of the house of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium.
Twelve years had passed
since his body had been found upon the bluff before his cottage overlooking the
Hudson, and oft-times during these long years I had wondered if John Carter
were really dead, or if he again roamed the dead sea bottoms of that dying
planet; if he had returned to Barsoom to find that he had opened the frowning
portals of the mighty atmosphere plant in time to save the countless millions
who were dying of asphyxiation on that far-gone day that had seen him hurtled
ruthlessly through forty-eight million miles of space back to Earth once more.
I had wondered if he had found his black-haired Princess and the slender son he
had dreamed was with her in the royal gardens of Tardos Mors, awaiting his
return.
Or, had he found that
he had been too late, and thus gone back to a living death upon a dead world?
Or was he really dead after all, never to return either to his mother Earth or
his beloved Mars?
Thus was I lost in
useless speculation one sultry August evening when old Ben, my body servant,
handed me a telegram. Tearing it open I read:
'Meet me to-morrow
hotel Raleigh Richmond.
'JOHN CARTER'
Early the next morning
I took the first train for Richmond and within two hours was being ushered into
the room occupied by John Carter.
As I entered he rose to
greet me, his old-time cordial smile of welcome lighting his handsome face.
Apparently he had not aged a minute, but was still the straight, clean-limbed
fighting-man of thirty. His keen grey eyes were undimmed, and the only lines
upon his face were the lines of iron character and determination that always
had been there since first I remembered him, nearly thirty-five years before.
'Well, nephew,' he
greeted me, 'do you feel as though you were seeing a ghost, or suffering from
the effects of too many of Uncle Ben's juleps?'
'Juleps, I reckon,' I
replied, 'for I certainly feel mighty good; but maybe it's just the sight of
you again that affects me. You have been back to Mars? Tell me. And Dejah
Thoris? You found her well and awaiting you?'
'Yes, I have been to
Barsoom again, and -- but it's a long story, too long to tell in the limited
time I have before I must return. I have learned the secret, nephew, and I may
traverse the trackless void at my will, coming and going between the countless
planets as I list; but my heart is always in Barsoom, and while it is there in
the keeping of my Martian Princess, I doubt that I shall ever again leave the
dying world that is my life.
'I have come now
because my affection for you prompted me to see you once more before you pass
over for ever into that other life that I shall never know, and which though I
have died thrice and shall die again to-night, as you know death, I am as
unable to fathom as are you.
'Even the wise and
mysterious therns of Barsoom, that ancient cult which for countless ages has
been credited with holding the secret of life and death in their impregnable
fastnesses upon the hither slopes of the Mountains of Otz, are as ignorant as
we. I have proved it, though I near lost my life in the doing of it; but you
shall read it all in the notes I have been making during the last three months
that I have been back upon Earth.'
He patted a swelling
portfolio that lay on the table at his elbow.
'I know that you are
interested and that you believe, and I know that the world, too, is interested,
though they will not believe for many years; yes, for many ages, since they
cannot understand. Earth men have not yet progressed to a point where they can
comprehend the things that I have written in those notes.
'Give them what you
wish of it, what you think will not harm them, but do not feel aggrieved if
they laugh at you.'
That night I walked
down to the cemetery with him. At the door of his vault he turned and pressed
my hand.
'Good-bye, nephew,' he
said. 'I may never see you again, for I doubt that I can ever bring myself to
leave my wife and boy while they live, and the span of life upon Barsoom is
often more than a thousand years.'
He entered the vault.
The great door swung slowly to. The ponderous bolts grated into place. The lock
clicked. I have never seen Captain John Carter, of Virginia, since.
But here is the story
of his return to Mars on that other occasion, as I have gleaned it from the
great mass of notes which he left for me upon the table of his room in the
hotel at Richmond.
There is much which I
have left out; much which I have not dared to tell; but you will find the story
of his second search for Dejah Thoris, Princess of Helium, even more remarkable
than was his first manuscript which I gave to an unbelieving world a short time
since and through which we followed the fighting Virginian across dead sea
bottoms under the moons of Mars.
I. The Plant Men 11
II. A Forest Battle 20
III. The Chamber of
Mystery 29
IV. Thuvia 39
V. Corridors of Peril
48
VI. The Black Pirates
of Barsoom 55
VII. A Fair Goddess 61
VIII. The Depths of
Omean 70
IX. Issus, Goddess of
Life Eternal 80
X. The Prison Isle of
Shador 87
XI. When Hell Broke
Loose 94
XII. Doomed to Die 104
XIII. A Break for
Liberty 110
XIV. The Eyes in the
Dark 119
XV. Flight and Pursuit
130
XVI. Under Arrest 136
XVII. The Death
Sentence 144
XVIII. Sola's Story 150
XIX. Black Despair 156
XX. The Air Battle 166
XXI. Through Flood and
Flame 176
XXII. Victory and
Defeat 182
As I stood upon the
bluff before my cottage on that clear cold night in the early part of March,
1886, the noble Hudson flowing like the grey and silent spectre of a dead river
below me, I felt again the strange, compelling influence of the mighty god of
war, my beloved Mars, which for ten long and lonesome years I had implored with
outstretched arms to carry me back to my lost love.
Not since that other
March night in 1866, when I had stood without that Arizona cave in which my
still and lifeless body lay wrapped in the similitude of earthly death had I
felt the irresistible attraction of the god of my profession.
With arms outstretched
toward the red eye of the great star I stood praying for a return of that
strange power which twice had drawn me through the immensity of space, praying
as I had prayed on a thousand nights before during the long ten years that I
had waited and hoped.
Suddenly a qualm of
nausea swept over me, my senses swam, my knees gave beneath me and I pitched
headlong to the ground upon the very verge of the dizzy bluff.
Instantly my brain cleared
and there swept back across the threshold of my memory the vivid picture of the
horrors of that ghostly Arizona cave; again, as on that far-gone night, my
muscles refused to respond to my will and again, as though even here upon the
banks of the placid Hudson, I could hear the awful moans and rustling of the
fearsome thing which had lurked and threatened me from the dark recesses of the
cave, I made the same mighty and superhuman effort to break the bonds of the
strange anaesthesia which held me, and again came the sharp click as of the
sudden parting of a taut wire, and I stood naked and free beside the staring,
lifeless thing that had so recently pulsed with the warm, red life-blood of
John Carter.
With scarcely a parting
glance I turned my eyes again toward Mars, lifted my hands toward his lurid
rays, and waited.
Nor did I have long to
wait; for scarce had I turned ere I shot with the rapidity of thought into the
awful void before me. There was the same instant of unthinkable cold and utter
darkness that I had experienced twenty years before, and then I opened my eyes
in another world, beneath the burning rays of a hot sun, which beat through a
tiny opening in the dome of the mighty forest in which I lay.
The scene that met my
eyes was so un-Martian that my heart sprang to my throat as the sudden fear
swept through me that I had been aimlessly tossed upon some strange planet by a
cruel fate.
Why not? What guide had
I through the trackless waste of interplanetary space? What assurance that I
might not as well be hurtled to some far-distant star of another solar system,
as to Mars?
I lay upon a
close-cropped sward of red grasslike vegetation, and about me stretched a grove
of strange and beautiful trees, covered with huge and gorgeous blossoms and
filled with brilliant, voiceless birds. I call them birds since they were
winged, but mortal eye ne'er rested on such odd, unearthly shapes.
The vegetation was
similar to that which covers the lawns of the red Martians of the great
waterways, but the trees and birds were unlike anything that I had ever seen
upon Mars, and then through the further trees I could see that most un-Martian
of all sights -- an open sea, its blue waters shimmering beneath the brazen
sun.
As I rose to
investigate further I experienced the same ridiculous catastrophe that had met
my first attempt to walk under Martian conditions. The lesser attraction of
this smaller planet and the reduced air pressure of its greatly rarefied
atmosphere, afforded so little resistance to my earthly muscles that the
ordinary exertion of the mere act of rising sent me several feet into the air
and precipitated me upon my face in the soft and brilliant grass of this
strange world.
This experience,
however, gave me some slightly increased assurance that, after all, I might
indeed be in some, to me, unknown corner of Mars, and this was very possible
since during my ten years' residence upon the planet I had explored but a
comparatively tiny area of its vast expanse.
I arose again, laughing
at my forgetfulness, and soon had mastered once more the art of attuning my
earthly sinews to these changed conditions.
As I walked slowly down
the imperceptible slope toward the sea I could not help but note the park-like
appearance of the sward and trees. The grass was as close-cropped and
carpet-like as some old English lawn and the trees themselves showed evidence
of careful pruning to a uniform height of about fifteen feet from the ground,
so that as one turned his glance in any direction the forest had the appearance
at a little distance of a vast, high-ceiled chamber.
All these evidences of
careful and systematic cultivation convinced me that I had been fortunate
enough to make my entry into Mars on this second occasion through the domain of
a civilized people and that when I should find them I would be accorded the
courtesy and protection that my rank as a Prince of the house of Tardos Mors
entitled me to.
The trees of the forest
attracted my deep admiration as I proceeded toward the sea. Their great stems,
some of them fully a hundred feet in diameter, attested their prodigious
height, which I could only guess at, since at no point could I penetrate their
dense foliage above me to more than sixty or eighty feet.
As far aloft as I could
see the stems and branches and twigs were as smooth and as highly polished as
the newest of American-made pianos. The wood of some of the trees was as black
as ebony, while their nearest neighbours might perhaps gleam in the subdued
light of the forest as clear and white as the finest china, or, again, they
were azure, scarlet, yellow, or deepest purple.
And in the same way was
the foliage as gay and variegated as the stems, while the blooms that clustered
thick upon them may not be described in any earthly tongue, and indeed might
challenge the language of the gods.
As I neared the
confines of the forest I beheld before me, and between the grove and the open
sea, a broad expanse of meadow land, and as I was about to emerge from the
shadows of the trees a sight met my eyes that banished all romantic and poetic
reflection upon the beauties of the strange landscape.
To my left the sea
extended as far as the eye could reach, before me only a vague, dim line
indicated its further shore, while at my right a mighty river, broad, placid,
and majestic, flowed between scarlet banks to empty into the quiet sea before
me.
At a little distance up
the river rose mighty perpendicular bluffs, from the very base of which the
great river seemed to rise.
But it was not these
inspiring and magnificent evidences of Nature's grandeur that took my immediate
attention from the beauties of the forest. It was the sight of a score of
figures moving slowly about the meadow near the bank of the mighty river.
Odd, grotesque shapes
they were; unlike anything that I had ever seen upon Mars, and yet, at a
distance, most man-like in appearance. The larger specimens appeared to be
about ten or twelve feet in height when they stood erect, and to be
proportioned as to torso and lower extremities precisely as is earthly man.
Their arms, however,
were very short, and from where I stood seemed as though fashioned much after
the manner of an elephant's trunk, in that they moved in sinuous and snake-like
undulations, as though entirely without bony structure, or if there were bones
it seemed that they must be vertebral in nature.
As I watched them from
behind the stem of a huge tree, one of the creatures moved slowly in my
direction, engaged in the occupation that seemed to be the principal business
of each of them, and which consisted in running their oddly shaped hands over
the surface of the sward, for what purpose I could not determine.
As he approached quite
close to me I obtained an excellent view of him, and though I was later to
become better acquainted with his kind, I may say that that single cursory
examination of this awful travesty on Nature would have proved quite sufficient
to my desires had I been a free agent. The fastest flier of the Heliumetic Navy
could not quickly enough have carried me far from this hideous creature.
Its hairless body was a
strange and ghoulish blue, except for a broad band of white which encircled its
protruding, single eye: an eye that was all dead white -- pupil, iris, and
ball.
Its nose was a ragged,
inflamed, circular hole in the centre of its blank face; a hole that resembled
more closely nothing that I could think of other than a fresh bullet wound
which has not yet commenced to bleed.
Below this repulsive
orifice the face was quite blank to the chin, for the thing had no mouth that I
could discover.
The head, with the
exception of the face, was covered by a tangled mass of jet-black hair some
eight or ten inches in length. Each hair was about the bigness of a large
angleworm, and as the thing moved the muscles of its scalp this awful
head-covering seemed to writhe and wriggle and crawl about the fearsome face as
though indeed each separate hair was endowed with independent life.
The body and the legs
were as symmetrically human as Nature could have fashioned them, and the feet,
too, were human in shape, but of monstrous proportions. From heel to toe they
were fully three feet long, and very flat and very broad.
As it came quite close
to me I discovered that its strange movements, running its odd hands over the
surface of the turf, were the result of its peculiar method of feeding, which
consists in cropping off the tender vegetation with its razor-like talons and sucking
it up from its two mouths, which lie one in the palm of each hand, through its
arm-like throats.
In addition to the
features which I have already described, the beast was equipped with a massive
tail about six feet in length, quite round where it joined the body, but
tapering to a flat, thin blade toward the end, which trailed at right angles to
the ground.
By far the most
remarkable feature of this most remarkable creature, however, were the two tiny
replicas of it, each about six inches in length, which dangled, one on either
side, from its armpits. They were suspended by a small stem which seemed to
grow from the exact tops of their heads to where it connected them with the
body of the adult.
Whether they were the
young, or merely portions of a composite creature, I did not know.
As I had been
scrutinizing this weird monstrosity the balance of the herd had fed quite close
to me and I now saw that while many had the smaller specimens dangling from
them, not all were thus equipped, and I further noted that the little ones
varied in size from what appeared to be but tiny unopened buds an inch in
diameter through various stages of development to the full-fledged and
perfectly formed creature of ten to twelve inches in length.
Feeding with the herd were
many of the little fellows not much larger than those which remained attached
to their parents, and from the young of that size the herd graded up to the
immense adults.
Fearsome-looking as
they were, I did not know whether to fear them or not, for they did not seem to
be particularly well equipped for fighting, and I was on the point of stepping
from my hiding-place and revealing myself to them to note the effect upon them
of the sight of a man when my rash resolve was, fortunately for me, nipped in the
bud by a strange shrieking wail, which seemed to come from the direction of the
bluffs at my right.
Naked and unarmed, as I
was, my end would have been both speedy and horrible at the hands of these
cruel creatures had I had time to put my resolve into execution, but at the
moment of the shriek each member of the herd turned in the direction from which
the sound seemed to come, and at the same instant every particular snake-like
hair upon their heads rose stiffly perpendicular as if each had been a sentient
organism looking or listening for the source or meaning of the wail. And indeed
the latter proved to be the truth, for this strange growth upon the craniums of
the plant men of Barsoom represents the thousand ears of these hideous
creatures, the last remnant of the strange race which sprang from the original
Tree of Life.
Instantly every eye
turned toward one member of the herd, a large fellow who evidently was the
leader. A strange purring sound issued from the mouth in the palm of one of his
hands, and at the same time he started rapidly toward the bluff, followed by
the entire herd.
Their speed and method
of locomotion were both remarkable, springing as they did in great leaps of
twenty or thirty feet, much after the manner of a kangaroo.
They were rapidly
disappearing when it occurred to me to follow them, and so, hurling caution to
the winds, I sprang across the meadow in their wake with leaps and bounds even
more prodigious than their own, for the muscles of an athletic Earth man
produce remarkable results when pitted against the lesser gravity and air
pressure of Mars.
Their way led directly
towards the apparent source of the river at the base of the cliffs, and as I
neared this point I found the meadow dotted with huge boulders that the ravages
of time had evidently dislodged from the towering crags above.
For this reason I came
quite close to the cause of the disturbance before the scene broke upon my
horrified gaze. As I topped a great boulder I saw the herd of plant men
surrounding a little group of perhaps five or six green men and women of
Barsoom.
That I was indeed upon
Mars I now had no doubt, for here were members of the wild hordes that people
the dead sea bottoms and deserted cities of that dying planet.
Here were the great
males towering in all the majesty of their imposing height; here were the
gleaming white tusks protruding from their massive lower jaws to a point near
the centre of their foreheads, the laterally placed, protruding eyes with which
they could look forward or backward, or to either side without turning their
heads, here the strange antennae-like ears rising from the tops of their
foreheads; and the additional pair of arms extending from midway between the
shoulders and the hips.
Even without the glossy
green hide and the metal ornaments which denoted the tribes to which they
belonged, I would have known them on the instant for what they were, for where
else in all the universe is their like duplicated?
There were two men and
four females in the party and their ornaments denoted them as members of
different hordes, a fact which tended to puzzle me infinitely, since the
various hordes of green men of Barsoom are eternally at deadly war with one
another, and never, except on that single historic instance when the great Tars
Tarkas of Thark gathered a hundred and fifty thousand green warriors from
several hordes to march upon the doomed city of Zodanga to rescue Dejah Thoris,
Princess of Helium, from the clutches of Than Kosis, had I seen green Martians
of different hordes associated in other than mortal combat.
But now they stood back
to back, facing, in wide-eyed amazement, the very evidently hostile
demonstrations of a common enemy.
Both men and women were
armed with long-swords and daggers, but no firearms were in evidence, else it
had been short shrift for the gruesome plant men of Barsoom.
Presently the leader of
the plant men charged the little party, and his method of attack was as
remarkable as it was effective, and by its very strangeness was the more
potent, since in the science of the green warriors there was no defence for
this singular manner of attack, the like of which it soon was evident to me
they were as unfamiliar with as they were with the monstrosities which
confronted them.
The plant men charged
to within a dozen feet of the party and then, with a bound, rose as though to
pass directly above their heads. His powerful tail was raised high to one side,
and as he passed close above them he brought it down in one terrific sweep that
crushed a green warrior's skull as though it had been an eggshell.
The balance of the
frightful herd was now circling rapidly and with bewildering speed about the
little knot of victims. Their prodigious bounds and the shrill, screeching purr
of their uncanny mouths were well calculated to confuse and terrorize their
prey, so that as two of them leaped simultaneously from either side, the mighty
sweep of those awful tails met with no resistance and two more green Martians
went down to an ignoble death.
There were now but one
warrior and two females left, and it seemed that it could be but a matter of
seconds ere these, also, lay dead upon the scarlet sward.
But as two more of the
plant men charged, the warrior, who was now prepared by the experiences of the
past few minutes, swung his mighty long-sword aloft and met the hurtling bulk
with a clean cut that clove one of the plant men from chin to groin.
The other, however,
dealt a single blow with his cruel tail that laid both of the females crushed
corpses upon the ground.
As the green warrior
saw the last of his companions go down and at the same time perceived that the
entire herd was charging him in a body, he rushed boldly to meet them, swinging
his long-sword in the terrific manner that I had so often seen the men of his
kind wield it in their ferocious and almost continual warfare among their own
race.
Cutting and hewing to
right and left, he laid an open path straight through the advancing plant men,
and then commenced a mad race for the forest, in the shelter of which he
evidently hoped that he might find a haven of refuge.
He had turned for that
portion of the forest which abutted on the cliffs, and thus the mad race was
taking the entire party farther and farther from the boulder where I lay
concealed.
As I had watched the
noble fight which the great warrior had put up against such enormous odds my
heart had swelled in admiration for him, and acting as I am wont to do, more
upon impulse than after mature deliberation, I instantly sprang from my
sheltering rock and bounded quickly toward the bodies of the dead green
Martians, a well-defined plan of action already formed.
Half a dozen great
leaps brought me to the spot, and another instant saw me again in my stride in
quick pursuit of the hideous monsters that were rapidly gaining on the fleeing
warrior, but this time I grasped a mighty long-sword in my hand and in my heart
was the old blood lust of the fighting-man, and a red mist swam before my eyes
and I felt my lips respond to my heart in the old smile that has ever marked me
in the midst of the joy of battle.
Swift as I was I was
none too soon, for the green warrior had been overtaken ere he had made half
the distance to the forest, and now he stood with his back to a boulder, while
the herd, temporarily balked, hissed and screeched about him.
With their single eyes
in the centre of their heads and every eye turned upon their prey, they did not
note my soundless approach, so that I was upon them with my great long-sword
and four of them lay dead ere they knew that I was among them.
For an instant they
recoiled before my terrific onslaught, and in that instant the green warrior
rose to the occasion and, springing to my side, laid to the right and left of
him as I had never seen but one other warrior do, with great circling strokes
that formed a figure eight about him and that never stopped until none stood
living to oppose him, his keen blade passing through flesh and bone and metal
as though each had been alike thin air.
As we bent to the
slaughter, far above us rose that shrill, weird cry which I had heard once
before, and which had called the herd to the attack upon their victims. Again
and again it rose, but we were too much engaged with the fierce and powerful
creatures about us to attempt to search out even with our eyes the author of
the horrid notes.
Great tails lashed in
frenzied anger about us, razor-like talons cut our limbs and bodies, and a
green and sticky syrup, such as oozes from a crushed caterpillar, smeared us
from head to foot, for every cut and thrust of our long-swords brought spurts
of this stuff upon us from the severed arteries of the plant men, through which
it courses in its sluggish viscidity in lieu of blood.
Once I felt the great
weight of one of the monsters upon my back and as keen talons sank into my
flesh I experienced the frightful sensation of moist lips sucking the lifeblood
from the wounds to which the claws still clung.
I was very much engaged
with a ferocious fellow who was endeavouring to reach my throat from in front,
while two more, one on either side, were lashing viciously at me with their
tails.
The green warrior was
much put to it to hold his own, and I felt that the unequal struggle could last
but a moment longer when the huge fellow discovered my plight, and tearing
himself from those that surrounded him, he raked the assailant from my back with
a single sweep of his blade, and thus relieved I had little difficulty with the
others.
Once together, we stood
almost back to back against the great boulder, and thus the creatures were
prevented from soaring above us to deliver their deadly blows, and as we were
easily their match while they remained upon the ground, we were making great
headway in dispatching what remained of them when our attention was again
attracted by the shrill wail of the caller above our heads.
This time I glanced up,
and far above us upon a little natural balcony on the face of the cliff stood a
strange figure of a man shrieking out his shrill signal, the while he waved one
hand in the direction of the river's mouth as though beckoning to some one
there, and with the other pointed and gesticulated toward us.
A glance in the
direction toward which he was looking was sufficient to apprise me of his aims
and at the same time to fill me with the dread of dire apprehension, for,
streaming in from all directions across the meadow, from out of the forest, and
from the far distance of the flat land across the river, I could see converging
upon us a hundred different lines of wildly leaping creatures such as we were
now engaged with, and with them some strange new monsters which ran with great
swiftness, now erect and now upon all fours.
"It will be a
great death," I said to my companion. "Look!"
As he shot a quick
glance in the direction I indicated he smiled.
"We may at least
die fighting and as great warriors should, John Carter," he replied.
We had just finished
the last of our immediate antagonists as he spoke, and I turned in surprised
wonderment at the sound of my name.
And there before my
astonished eyes I beheld the greatest of the green men of Barsoom; their
shrewdest statesman, their mightiest general, my great and good friend, Tars
Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark.
TARS TARKAS and I found
no time for an exchange of experiences as we stood there before the great
boulder surrounded by the corpses of our grotesque assailants, for from all
directions down the broad valley was streaming a perfect torrent of terrifying
creatures in response to the weird call of the strange figure far above us.
"Come," cried
Tars Tarkas, "we must make for the cliffs. There lies our only hope of
even temporary escape; there we may find a cave or a narrow ledge which two may
defend for ever against this motley, unarmed horde."
Together we raced
across the scarlet sward, I timing my speed that I might not outdistance my
slower companion. We had, perhaps, three hundred yards to cover between our
boulder and the cliffs, and then to search out a suitable shelter for our stand
against the terrifying things that were pursuing us.
They were rapidly
overhauling us when Tars Tarkas cried to me to hasten ahead and discover, if
possible, the sanctuary we sought. The suggestion was a good one, for thus many
valuable minutes might be saved to us, and, throwing every ounce of my earthly
muscles into the effort, I cleared the remaining distance between myself and
the cliffs in great leaps and bounds that put me at their base in a moment.
The cliffs rose
perpendicular directly from the almost level sward of the valley. There was no
accumulation of fallen debris, forming a more or less rough ascent to them, as
is the case with nearly all other cliffs I have ever seen. The scattered
boulders that had fallen from above and lay upon or partly buried in the turf,
were the only indication that any disintegration of the massive, towering pile
of rocks ever had taken place.
My first cursory
inspection of the face of the cliffs filled my heart with forebodings, since
nowhere could I discern, except where the weird herald stood still shrieking
his shrill summons, the faintest indication of even a bare foothold upon the
lofty escarpment.
To my right the bottom
of the cliff was lost in the dense foliage of the forest, which terminated at
its very foot, rearing its gorgeous foliage fully a thousand feet against its
stern and forbidding neighbour.
To the left the cliff ran,
apparently unbroken, across the head of the broad valley, to be lost in the
outlines of what appeared to be a range of mighty mountains that skirted and
confined the valley in every direction.
Perhaps a thousand feet
from me the river broke, as it seemed, directly from the base of the cliffs,
and as there seemed not the remotest chance for escape in that direction I
turned my attention again toward the forest.
The cliffs towered
above me a good five thousand feet. The sun was not quite upon them and they
loomed a dull yellow in their own shade. Here and there they were broken with
streaks and patches of dusky red, green, and occasional areas of white quartz.
Altogether they were
very beautiful, but I fear that I did not regard them with a particularly
appreciative eye on this, my first inspection of them.
Just then I was
absorbed in them only as a medium of escape, and so, as my gaze ran quickly,
time and again, over their vast expanse in search of some cranny or crevice, I
came suddenly to loathe them as the prisoner must loathe the cruel and
impregnable walls of his dungeon.
Tars Tarkas was
approaching me rapidly, and still more rapidly came the awful horde at his
heels.
It seemed the forest
now or nothing, and I was just on the point of motioning Tars Tarkas to follow
me in that direction when the sun passed the cliff's zenith, and as the bright
rays touched the dull surface it burst out into a million scintillant lights of
burnished gold, of flaming red, of soft greens, and gleaming whites -- a more
gorgeous and inspiring spectacle human eye has never rested upon.
The face of the entire
cliff was, as later inspection conclusively proved, so shot with veins and
patches of solid gold as to quite present the appearance of a solid wall of
that precious metal except where it was broken by outcroppings of ruby,
emerald, and diamond boulders -- a faint and alluring indication of the vast
and unguessable riches which lay deeply buried behind the magnificent surface.
But what caught my most
interested attention at the moment that the sun's rays set the cliff's face
a-shimmer, was the several black spots which now appeared quite plainly in
evidence high across the gorgeous wall close to the forest's top, and extending
apparently below and behind the branches.
Almost immediately I
recognised them for what they were, the dark openings of caves entering the
solid walls -- possible avenues of escape or temporary shelter, could we but
reach them.
There was but a single
way, and that led through the mighty, towering trees upon our right. That I
could scale them I knew full well, but Tars Tarkas, with his mighty bulk and
enormous weight, would find it a task possibly quite beyond his prowess or his
skill, for Martians are at best but poor climbers. Upon the entire surface of
that ancient planet I never before had seen a hill or mountain that exceeded
four thousand feet in height above the dead sea bottoms, and as the ascent was
usually gradual, nearly to their summits they presented but few opportunities
for the practice of climbing. Nor would the Martians have embraced even such
opportunities as might present themselves, for they could always find a
circuitous route about the base of any eminence, and these roads they preferred
and followed in preference to the shorter but more arduous ways.
However, there was
nothing else to consider than an attempt to scale the trees contiguous to the
cliff in an effort to reach the caves above.
The Thark grasped the
possibilities and the difficulties of the plan at once, but there was no
alternative, and so we set out rapidly for the trees nearest the cliff.
Our relentless pursuers
were now close to us, so close that it seemed that it would be an utter
impossibility for the Jeddak of Thark to reach the forest in advance of them,
nor was there any considerable will in the efforts that Tars Tarkas made, for
the green men of Barsoom do not relish flight, nor ever before had I seen one
fleeing from death in whatsoever form it might have confronted him. But that
Tars Tarkas was the bravest of the brave he had proven thousands of times; yes,
tens of thousands in countless mortal combats with men and beasts. And so I
knew that there was another reason than fear of death behind his flight, as he
knew that a greater power than pride or honour spurred me to escape these
fierce destroyers. In my case it was love -- love of the divine Dejah Thoris;
and the cause of the Thark's great and sudden love of life I could not fathom, for
it is oftener that they seek death than life -- these strange, cruel, loveless,
unhappy people.
At length, however, we
reached the shadows of the forest, while right behind us sprang the swiftest of
our pursuers -- a giant plant man with claws outreaching to fasten his
blood-sucking mouths upon us.
He was, I should say, a
hundred yards in advance of his closest companion, and so I called to Tars
Tarkas to ascend a great tree that brushed the cliff's face while I dispatched
the fellow, thus giving the less agile Thark an opportunity to reach the higher
branches before the entire horde should be upon us and every vestige of escape
cut off.
But I had reckoned
without a just appreciation either of the cunning of my immediate antagonist or
the swiftness with which his fellows were covering the distance which had
separated them from me.
As I raised my
long-sword to deal the creature its death thrust it halted in its charge and,
as my sword cut harmlessly through the empty air, the great tail of the thing
swept with the power of a grizzly's arm across the sward and carried me bodily
from my feet to the ground. In an instant the brute was upon me, but ere it
could fasten its hideous mouths into my breast and throat I grasped a writhing
tentacle in either hand.
The plant man was well
muscled, heavy, and powerful but my earthly sinews and greater agility, in
conjunction with the deathly strangle hold I had upon him, would have given me,
I think, an eventual victory had we had time to discuss the merits of our relative
prowess uninterrupted. But as we strained and struggled about the tree into
which Tars Tarkas was clambering with infinite difficulty, I suddenly caught a
glimpse over the shoulder of my antagonist of the great swarm of pursuers that
now were fairly upon me.
Now, at last, I saw the
nature of the other monsters who had come with the plant men in response to the
weird calling of the man upon the cliff's face. They were that most dreaded of
Martian creatures -- great white apes of Barsoom.
My former experiences
upon Mars had familiarized me thoroughly with them and their methods, and I may
say that of all the fearsome and terrible, weird and grotesque inhabitants of
that strange world, it is the white apes that come nearest to familiarizing me
with the sensation of fear.
I think that the cause
of this feeling which these apes engender within me is due to their remarkable
resemblance in form to our Earth men, which gives them a human appearance that
is most uncanny when coupled with their enormous size.
They stand fifteen feet
in height and walk erect upon their hind feet. Like the green Martians, they
have an intermediary set of arms midway between their upper and lower limbs.
Their eyes are very close set, but do not protrude as do those of the green men
of Mars; their ears are high set, but more laterally located than are the green
men's, while their snouts and teeth are much like those of our African gorilla.
Upon their heads grows an enormous shock of bristly hair.
It was into the eyes of
such as these and the terrible plant men that I gazed above the shoulder of my
foe, and then, in a mighty wave of snarling, snapping, screaming, purring rage,
they swept over me -- and of all the sounds that assailed my ears as I went
down beneath them, to me the most hideous was the horrid purring of the plant
men.
Instantly a score of
cruel fangs and keen talons were sunk into my flesh; cold, sucking lips
fastened themselves upon my arteries. I struggled to free myself, and even
though weighed down by these immense bodies, I succeeded in struggling to my
feet, where, still grasping my long-sword, and shortening my grip upon it until
I could use it as a dagger, I wrought such havoc among them that at one time I
stood for an instant free.
What it has taken
minutes to write occurred in but a few seconds, but during that time Tars
Tarkas had seen my plight and had dropped from the lower branches, which he had
reached with such infinite labour, and as I flung the last of my immediate
antagonists from me the great Thark leaped to my side, and again we fought,
back to back, as we had done a hundred times before.
Time and again the
ferocious apes sprang in to close with us, and time and again we beat them back
with our swords. The great tails of the plant men lashed with tremendous power
about us as they charged from various directions or sprang with the agility of
greyhounds above our heads; but every attack met a gleaming blade in sword
hands that had been reputed for twenty years the best that Mars ever had known;
for Tars Tarkas and John Carter were names that the fighting men of the world
of warriors loved best to speak.
But even the two best
swords in a world of fighters can avail not for ever against overwhelming
numbers of fierce and savage brutes that know not what defeat means until cold
steel teaches their hearts no longer to beat, and so, step by step, we were
forced back. At length we stood against the giant tree that we had chosen for
our ascent, and then, as charge after charge hurled its weight upon us, we gave
back again and again, until we had been forced half-way around the huge base of
the colossal trunk.
Tars Tarkas was in the
lead, and suddenly I heard a little cry of exultation from him.
"Here is shelter
for one at least, John Carter," he said, and, glancing down, I saw an
opening in the base of the tree about three feet in diameter.
"In with you, Tars
Tarkas," I cried, but he would not go; saying that his bulk was too great
for the little aperture, while I might slip in easily.
"We shall both die
if we remain without, John Carter; here is a slight chance for one of us. Take
it and you may live to avenge me, it is useless for me to attempt to worm my
way into so small an opening with this horde of demons besetting us on all
sides."
"Then we shall die
together, Tars Tarkas," I replied, "for I shall not go first. Let me
defend the opening while you get in, then my smaller stature will permit me to
slip in with you before they can prevent."
We still were fighting
furiously as we talked in broken sentences, punctured with vicious cuts and
thrusts at our swarming enemy.
At length he yielded,
for it seemed the only way in which either of us might be saved from the
ever-increasing numbers of our assailants, who were still swarming upon us from
all directions across the broad valley.
"It was ever your
way, John Carter, to think last of your own life," he said; "but
still more your way to command the lives and actions of others, even to the
greatest of Jeddaks who rule upon Barsoom."
There was a grim smile
upon his cruel, hard face, as he, the greatest Jeddak of them all, turned to
obey the dictates of a creature of another world -- of a man whose stature was
less than half his own.
"If you fail, John
Carter," he said, "know that the cruel and heartless Thark, to whom
you taught the meaning of friendship, will come out to die beside you."
"As you will, my
friend," I replied; "but quickly now, head first, while I cover your
retreat."
He hesitated a little
at that word, for never before in his whole life of continual strife had he
turned his back upon aught than a dead or defeated enemy.
"Haste, Tars
Tarkas," I urged, "or we shall both go down to profitless defeat; I
cannot hold them for ever alone."
As he dropped to the
ground to force his way into the tree, the whole howling pack of hideous devils
hurled themselves upon me. To right and left flew my shimmering blade, now
green with the sticky juice of a plant man, now red with the crimson blood of a
great white ape; but always flying from one opponent to another, hesitating but
the barest fraction of a second to drink the lifeblood in the centre of some
savage heart.
And thus I fought as I
never had fought before, against such frightful odds that I cannot realize even
now that human muscles could have withstood that awful onslaught, that terrific
weight of hurtling tons of ferocious, battling flesh.
With the fear that we
would escape them, the creatures redoubled their efforts to pull me down, and
though the ground about me was piled high with their dead and dying comrades,
they succeeded at last in overwhelming me, and I went down beneath them for the
second time that day, and once again felt those awful sucking lips against my
flesh.
But scarce had I fallen
ere I felt powerful hands grip my ankles, and in another second I was being
drawn within the shelter of the tree's interior. For a moment it was a tug of
war between Tars Tarkas and a great plant man, who clung tenaciously to my breast,
but presently I got the point of my long-sword beneath him and with a mighty
thrust pierced his vitals.
Torn and bleeding from
many cruel wounds, I lay panting upon the ground within the hollow of the tree,
while Tars Tarkas defended the opening from the furious mob without.
For an hour they howled
about the tree, but after a few attempts to reach us they confined their
efforts to terrorizing shrieks and screams, to horrid growling on the part of
the great white apes, and the fearsome and indescribable purring by the plant
men.
At length, all but a
score, who had apparently been left to prevent our escape, had left us, and our
adventure seemed destined to result in a siege, the only outcome of which could
be our death by starvation; for even should we be able to slip out after dark,
whither in this unknown and hostile valley could we hope to turn our steps
toward possible escape?
As the attacks of our
enemies ceased and our eyes became accustomed to the semi-darkness of the
interior of our strange retreat, I took the opportunity to explore our shelter.
The tree was hollow to
an extent of about fifty feet in diameter, and from its flat, hard floor I
judged that it had often been used to domicile others before our occupancy. As
I raised my eyes toward its roof to note the height I saw far above me a faint
glow of light.
There was an opening
above. If we could but reach it we might still hope to make the shelter of the
cliff caves. My eyes had now become quite used to the subdued light of the
interior, and as I pursued my investigation I presently came upon a rough
ladder at the far side of the cave.
Quickly I mounted it,
only to find that it connected at the top with the lower of a series of
horizontal wooden bars that spanned the now narrow and shaft-like interior of
the tree's stem. These bars were set one above another about three feet apart,
and formed a perfect ladder as far above me as I could see.
Dropping to the floor
once more, I detailed my discovery to Tars Tarkas, who suggested that I explore
aloft as far as I could go in safety while he guarded the entrance against a
possible attack.
As I hastened above to
explore the strange shaft I found that the ladder of horizontal bars mounted
always as far above me as my eyes could reach, and as I ascended, the light
from above grew brighter and brighter.
For fully five hundred
feet I continued to climb, until at length I reached the opening in the stem
which admitted the light. It was of about the same diameter as the entrance at
the foot of the tree, and opened directly upon a large flat limb, the well-worn
surface of which testified to its long-continued use as an avenue for some
creature to and from this remarkable shaft.
I did not venture out
upon the limb for fear that I might be discovered and our retreat in this
direction cut off; but instead hurried to retrace my steps to Tars Tarkas.
I soon reached him and
presently we were both ascending the long ladder toward the opening above.
Tars Tarkas went in
advance and as I reached the first of the horizontal bars I drew the ladder up
after me and, handing it to him, he carried it a hundred feet further aloft,
where he wedged it safely between one of the bars and the side of the shaft. In
like manner I dislodged the lower bars as I passed them, so that we soon had
the interior of the tree denuded of all possible means of ascent for a distance
of a hundred feet from the base; thus precluding possible pursuit and attack
from the rear.
As we were to learn
later, this precaution saved us from dire predicament, and was eventually the
means of our salvation.
When we reached the
opening at the top Tars Tarkas drew to one side that I might pass out and
investigate, as, owing to my lesser weight and greater agility, I was better
fitted for the perilous threading of this dizzy, hanging pathway.
The limb upon which I
found myself ascended at a slight angle toward the cliff, and as I followed it
I found that it terminated a few feet above a narrow ledge which protruded from
the cliff's face at the entrance to a narrow cave.
As I approached the
slightly more slender extremity of the branch it bent beneath my weight until,
as I balanced perilously upon its outer tip, it swayed gently on a level with
the ledge at a distance of a couple of feet.
Five hundred feet below
me lay the vivid scarlet carpet of the valley; nearly five thousand feet above
towered the mighty, gleaming face of the gorgeous cliffs.
The cave that I faced
was not one of those that I had seen from the ground, and which lay much
higher, possibly a thousand feet. But so far as I might know it was as good for
our purpose as another, and so I returned to the tree for Tars Tarkas.
Together we wormed our
way along the waving pathway, but when we reached the end of the branch we
found that our combined weight so depressed the limb that the cave's mouth was
now too far above us to be reached.
We finally agreed that
Tars Tarkas should return along the branch, leaving his longest leather harness
strap with me, and that when the limb had risen to a height that would permit
me to enter the cave I was to do so, and on Tars Tarkas' return I could then
lower the strap and haul him up to the safety of the ledge.
This we did without
mishap and soon found ourselves together upon the verge of a dizzy little balcony,
with a magnificent view of the valley spreading out below us.
As far as the eye could
reach gorgeous forest and crimson sward skirted a silent sea, and about all
towered the brilliant monster guardian cliffs. Once we thought we discerned a
gilded minaret gleaming in the sun amidst the waving tops of far-distant trees,
but we soon abandoned the idea in the belief that it was but an hallucination
born of our great desire to discover the haunts of civilized men in this
beautiful, yet forbidding, spot.
Below us upon the
river's bank the great white apes were devouring the last remnants of Tars
Tarkas' former companions, while great herds of plant men grazed in
ever-widening circles about the sward which they kept as close clipped as the
smoothest of lawns.
Knowing that attack
from the tree was now improbable, we determined to explore the cave, which we
had every reason to believe was but a continuation of the path we had already
traversed, leading the gods alone knew where, but quite evidently away from
this valley of grim ferocity.
As we advanced we found
a well-proportioned tunnel cut from the solid cliff. Its walls rose some twenty
feet above the floor, which was about five feet in width. The roof was arched.
We had no means of making a light, and so groped our way slowly into the
ever-increasing darkness, Tars Tarkas keeping in touch with one wall while I
felt along the other, while, to prevent our wandering into diverging branches
and becoming separated or lost in some intricate and labyrinthine maze, we
clasped hands.
How far we traversed
the tunnel in this manner I do not know, but presently we came to an
obstruction which blocked our further progress. It seemed more like a partition
than a sudden ending of the cave, for it was constructed not of the material of
the cliff, but of something which felt like very hard wood.
Silently I groped over
its surface with my hands, and presently was rewarded by the feel of the button
which as commonly denotes a door on Mars as does a door knob on Earth.
Gently pressing it, I
had the satisfaction of feeling the door slowly give before me, and in another
instant we were looking into a dimly lighted apartment, which, so far as we
could see, was unoccupied.
Without more ado I
swung the door wide open and, followed by the huge Thark, stepped into the
chamber. As we stood for a moment in silence gazing about the room a slight
noise behind caused me to turn quickly, when, to my astonishment, I saw the
door close with a sharp click as though by an unseen hand.
Instantly I sprang
toward it to wrench it open again, for something in the uncanny movement of the
thing and the tense and almost palpable silence of the chamber seemed to
portend a lurking evil lying hidden in this rock-bound chamber within the
bowels of the Golden Cliffs.
My fingers clawed
futilely at the unyielding portal, while my eyes sought in vain for a duplicate
of the button which had given us ingress.
And then, from unseen
lips, a cruel and mocking peal of laughter rang through the desolate place.
FOR MOMENTS after that
awful laugh had ceased reverberating through the rocky room, Tars Tarkas and I
stood in tense and expectant silence. But no further sound broke the stillness,
nor within the range of our vision did aught move.
At length Tars Tarkas
laughed softly, after the manner of his strange kind when in the presence of
the horrible or terrifying. It is not an hysterical laugh, but rather the
genuine expression of the pleasure they derive from the things that move Earth
men to loathing or to tears.
Often and again have I
seen them roll upon the ground in mad fits of uncontrollable mirth when
witnessing the death agonies of women and little children beneath the torture
of that hellish green Martian fete -- the Great Games.
I looked up at the
Thark, a smile upon my own lips, for here in truth was greater need for a
smiling face than a trembling chin.
"What do you make
of it all?" I asked. "Where in the deuce are we?"
He looked at me in
surprise.
"Where are
we?" he repeated. "Do you tell me, John Carter, that you know not
where you be?"
"That I am upon
Barsoom is all that I can guess, and but for you and the great white apes I
should not even guess that, for the sights I have seen this day are as unlike
the things of my beloved Barsoom as I knew it ten long years ago as they are
unlike the world of my birth.
"No, Tars Tarkas,
I know not where we be."
"Where have you
been since you opened the mighty portals of the atmosphere plant years ago,
after the keeper had died and the engines stopped and all Barsoom was dying,
that had not already died, of asphyxiation? Your body even was never found,
though the men of a whole world sought after it for years, though the Jeddak of
Helium and his grand-daughter, your princess, offered such fabulous rewards
that even princes of royal blood joined in the search.
"There was but one
conclusion to reach when all efforts to locate you had failed, and that, that
you had taken the long, last pilgrimage down the mysterious River Iss, to await
in the Valley Dor upon the shores of the Lost Sea of Korus the beautiful Dejah
Thoris, your princess.
"Why you had gone
none could guess, for your princess still lived -- "
"Thank God,"
I interrupted him. "I did not dare to ask you, for I feared I might have
been too late to save her -- she was very low when I left her in the royal
gardens of Tardos Mors that long-gone night; so very low that I scarcely hoped
even then to reach the atmosphere plant ere her dear spirit had fled from me
for ever. And she lives yet?"
"She lives, John
Carter."
"You have not told
me where we are," I reminded him.
"We are where I
expected to find you, John Carter -- and another. Many years ago you heard the
story of the woman who taught me the thing that green Martians are reared to
hate, the woman who taught me to love. You know the cruel tortures and the awful
death her love won for her at the hands of the beast, Tal Hajus.
"She, I thought,
awaited me by the Lost Sea of Korus.
"You know that it
was left for a man from another world, for yourself, John Carter, to teach this
cruel Thark what friendship is; and you, I thought, also roamed the care-free
Valley Dor.
"Thus were the two
I most longed for at the end of the long pilgrimage I must take some day, and
so as the time had elapsed which Dejah Thoris had hoped might bring you once
more to her side, for she has always tried to believe that you had but
temporarily returned to your own planet, I at last gave way to my great
yearning and a month since I started upon the journey, the end of which you
have this day witnessed. Do you understand now where you be, John Carter?"
"And that was the
River Iss, emptying into the Lost Sea of Korus in the Valley Dor?" I
asked.
"This is the
valley of love and peace and rest to which every Barsoomian since time
immemorial has longed to pilgrimage at the end of a life of hate and strife and
bloodshed," he replied. "This, John Carter, is Heaven."
His tone was cold and
ironical; its bitterness but reflecting the terrible disappointment he had
suffered. Such a fearful disillusionment, such a blasting of life-long hopes
and aspirations, such an uprooting of age-old tradition might have excused a
vastly greater demonstration on the part of the Thark.
I laid my hand upon his
shoulder.
"I am sorry,"
I said, nor did there seem aught else to say.
"Think, John
Carter, of the countless billions of Barsoomians who have taken the voluntary
pilgrimage down this cruel river since the beginning of time, only to fall into
the ferocious clutches of the terrible creatures that to-day assailed us.
"There is an
ancient legend that once a red man returned from the banks of the Lost Sea of
Korus, returned from the Valley Dor, back through the mysterious River Iss, and
the legend has it that he narrated a fearful blasphemy of horrid brutes that
inhabited a valley of wondrous loveliness, brutes that pounced upon each
Barsoomian as he terminated his pilgrimage and devoured him upon the banks of
the Lost Sea where he had looked to find love and peace and happiness; but the
ancients killed the blasphemer, as tradition has ordained that any shall be
killed who return from the bosom of the River of Mystery.
"But now we know
that it was no blasphemy, that the legend is a true one, and that the man told
only of what he saw; but what does it profit us, John Carter, since even should
we escape, we also would be treated as blasphemers? We are between the wild
thoat of certainty and the mad zitidar of fact -- we can escape neither."
"As Earth men say,
we are between the devil and the deep sea, Tars Tarkas," I replied, nor
could I help but smile at our dilemma.
"There is naught
that we can do but take things as they come, and at least have the satisfaction
of knowing that whoever slays us eventually will have far greater numbers of
their own dead to count than they will get in return. White ape or plant man,
green Barsoomian or red man, whosoever it shall be that takes the last toll
from us will know that it is costly in lives to wipe out John Carter, Prince of
the House of Tardos Mors, and Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, at the same
time."
I could not help but
laugh at him grim humour, and he joined in with me in one of those rare laughs
of real enjoyment which was one of the attributes of this fierce Tharkian chief
which marked him from the others of his kind.
"But about
yourself, John Carter," he cried at last. "If you have not been here
all these years where indeed have you been, and how is it that I find you here
to-day?"
"I have been back
to Earth," I replied. "For ten long Earth years I have been praying
and hoping for the day that would carry me once more to this grim old planet of
yours, for which, with all its cruel and terrible customs, I feel a bond of
sympathy and love even greater than for the world that gave me birth.
"For ten years
have I been enduring a living death of uncertainty and doubt as to whether
Dejah Thoris lived, and now that for the first time in all these years my
prayers have been answered and my doubt relieved I find myself, through a cruel
whim of fate, hurled into the one tiny spot of all Barsoom from which there is
apparently no escape, and if there were, at a price which would put out for
ever the last flickering hope which I may cling to of seeing my princess again
in this life -- and you have seen to-day with what pitiful futility man yearns
toward a material hereafter.
"Only a bare
half-hour before I saw you battling with the plant men I was standing in the
moonlight upon the banks of a broad river that taps the eastern shore of
Earth's most blessed land. I have answered you, my friend. Do you
believe?"
"I believe,"
replied Tars Tarkas, "though I cannot understand."
As we talked I had been
searching the interior of the chamber with my eyes. It was, perhaps, two
hundred feet in length and half as broad, with what appeared to be a doorway in
the centre of the wall directly opposite that through which we had entered.
The apartment was hewn
from the material of the cliff, showing mostly dull gold in the dim light which
a single minute radium illuminator in the centre of the roof diffused
throughout its great dimensions. Here and there polished surfaces faces of
ruby, emerald, and diamond patched the golden walls and ceiling. The floor was
of another material, very hard, and worn by much use to the smoothness of
glass. Aside from the two doors I could discern no sign of other aperture, and
as one we knew to be locked against us I approached the other.
As I extended my hand
to search for the controlling button, that cruel and mocking laugh rang out
once more, so close to me this time that I involuntarily shrank back,
tightening my grip upon the hilt of my great sword.
And then from the far
corner of the great chamber a hollow voice chanted: "There is no hope,
there is no hope; the dead return not, the dead return not; nor is there any
resurrection. Hope not, for there is no hope."
Though our eyes
instantly turned toward the spot from which the voice seemed to emanate, there
was no one in sight, and I must admit that cold shivers played along my spine
and the short hairs at the base of my head stiffened and rose up, as do those
upon a hound's neck when in the night his eyes see those uncanny things which
are hidden from the sight of man.
Quickly I walked toward
the mournful voice, but it had ceased ere I reached the further wall, and then
from the other end of the chamber came another voice, shrill and piercing:
"Fools!
Fools!" it shrieked. "Thinkest thou to defeat the eternal laws of
life and death? Wouldst cheat the mysterious Issus, Goddess of Death, of her
just dues? Did not her mighty messenger, the ancient Iss, bear you upon her
leaden bosom at your own behest to the Valley Dor?
"Thinkest thou, O
fools, that Issus wilt give up her own? Thinkest thou to escape from whence in
all the countless ages but a single soul has fled?
"Go back the way
thou camest, to the merciful maws of the children of the Tree of Life or the
gleaming fangs of the great white apes, for there lies speedy surcease from
suffering; but insist in your rash purpose to thread the mazes of the Golden
Cliffs of the Mountains of Otz, past the ramparts of the impregnable fortresses
of the Holy Therns, and upon your way Death in its most frightful form will
overtake you -- a death so horrible that even the Holy Therns themselves, who
conceived both Life and Death, avert their eyes from its fiendishness and close
their ears against the hideous shrieks of its victims.
"Go back, O fools,
the way thou camest."
And then the awful
laugh broke out from another part of the chamber.
"Most
uncanny," I remarked, turning to Tars Tarkas.
"What shall we
do?" he asked. "We cannot fight empty air; I would almost sooner
return and face foes into whose flesh I may feel my blade bite and know that I
am selling my carcass dearly before I go down to that eternal oblivion which is
evidently the fairest and most desirable eternity that mortal man has the right
to hope for."
"If, as you say,
we cannot fight empty air, Tars Tarkas," I replied, "neither, on the
other hand, can empty air fight us. I, who have faced and conquered in my time
thousands of sinewy warriors and tempered blades, shall not be turned back by
wind; nor no more shall you, Thark."
"But unseen voices
may emanate from unseen and unseeable creatures who wield invisible
blades," answered the green warrior.
"Rot, Tars
Tarkas," I cried, "those voices come from beings as real as you or as
I. In their veins flows lifeblood that may be let as easily as ours, and the
fact that they remain invisible to us is the best proof to my mind that they
are mortal; nor overly courageous mortals at that. Think you, Tars Tarkas, that
John Carter will fly at the first shriek of a cowardly foe who dare not come
out into the open and face a good blade?"
I had spoken in a loud
voice that there might be no question that our would-be terrorizers should hear
me, for I was tiring of this nerve-racking fiasco. It had occurred to me, too,
that the whole business was but a plan to frighten us back into the valley of
death from which we had escaped, that we might be quickly disposed of by the
savage creatures there.
For a long period there
was silence, then of a sudden a soft, stealthy sound behind me caused me to
turn suddenly to be hold a great many-legged banth creeping sinuously upon me.
The banth is a fierce
beast of prey that roams the low hills surrounding the dead seas of ancient
Mars. Like nearly all Martian animals it is almost hairless, having only a
great bristly mane about its thick neck.
Its long, lithe body is
supported by ten powerful legs, its enormous jaws are equipped, like those of
the calot, or Martian hound, with several rows of long needle-like fangs; its
mouth reaches to a point far back of its tiny ears, while its enormous,
protruding eyes of green add the last touch of terror to its awful aspect.
As it crept toward me
it lashed its powerful tail against its yellow sides, and when it saw that it
was discovered it emitted the terrifying roar which often freezes its prey into
momentary paralysis in the instant that it makes its spring.
And so it launched its
great bulk toward me, but its mighty voice had held no paralysing terrors for
me, and it met cold steel instead of the tender flesh its cruel jaws gaped so
widely to engulf.
An instant later I drew
my blade from the still heart of this great Barsoomian lion, and turning toward
Tars Tarkas was surprised to see him facing a similar monster.
No sooner had he
dispatched his than I, turning, as though drawn by the instinct of my guardian
subconscious mind, beheld another of the savage denizens of the Martian wilds
leaping across the chamber toward me.
From then on for the
better part of an hour one hideous creature after another was launched upon us,
springing apparently from the empty air about us.
Tars Tarkas was
satisfied; here was something tangible that he could cut and slash with his great
blade, while I, for my part, may say that the diversion was a marked
improvement over the uncanny voices from unseen lips.
That there was nothing
supernatural about our new foes was well evidenced by their howls of rage and
pain as they felt the sharp steel at their vitals, and the very real blood
which flowed from their severed arteries as they died the real death.
I noticed during the
period of this new persecution that the beasts appeared only when our backs
were turned; we never saw one really materialize from thin air, nor did I for
an instant sufficiently lose my excellent reasoning faculties to be once
deluded into the belief that the beasts came into the room other than through
some concealed and well-contrived doorway.
Among the ornaments of
Tars Tarkas' leather harness, which is the only manner of clothing worn by
Martians other than silk capes and robes of silk and fur for protection from
the cold after dark, was a small mirror, about the bigness of a lady's hand
glass, which hung midway between his shoulders and his waist against his broad
back.
Once as he stood
looking down at a newly fallen antagonist my eyes happened to fall upon this
mirror and in its shiny surface I saw pictured a sight that caused me to
whisper:
"Move not, Tars
Tarkas! Move not a muscle!"
He did not ask why, but
stood like a graven image while my eyes watched the strange thing that meant so
much to us.
What I saw was the
quick movement of a section of the wall behind me. It was turning upon pivots,
and with it a section of the floor directly in front of it was turning. It was
as though you placed a visiting-card upon end on a silver dollar that you had
laid flat upon a table, so that the edge of the card perfectly bisected the
surface of the coin.
The card might represent
the section of the wall that turned and the silver dollar the section of the
floor. Both were so nicely fitted into the adjacent portions of the floor and
wall that no crack had been noticeable in the dim light of the chamber.
As the turn was half completed
a great beast was revealed sitting upon its haunches upon that part of the
revolving floor that had been on the opposite side before the wall commenced to
move; when the section stopped, the beast was facing toward me on our side of
the partition -- it was very simple.
But what had interested
me most was the sight that the half-turned section had presented through the
opening that it had made. A great chamber, well lighted, in which were several
men and women chained to the wall, and in front of them, evidently directing
and operating the movement of the secret doorway, a wicked-faced man, neither
red as are the red men of Mars, nor green as are the green men, but white, like
myself, with a great mass of flowing yellow hair.
The prisoners behind him
were red Martians. Chained with them were a number of fierce beasts, such as
had been turned upon us, and others equally as ferocious.
As I turned to meet my
new foe it was with a heart considerably lightened.
"Watch the wall at
your end of the chamber, Tars Tarkas," I cautioned, "it is through
secret doorways in the wall that the brutes are loosed upon us." I was
very close to him and spoke in a low whisper that my knowledge of their secret
might not be disclosed to our tormentors.
As long as we remained
each facing an opposite end of the apartment no further attacks were made upon
us, so it was quite clear to me that the partitions were in some way pierced
that our actions might be observed from without.
At length a plan of
action occurred to me, and backing quite close to Tars Tarkas I unfolded my
scheme in a low whisper, keeping my eyes still glued upon my end of the room.
The great Thark grunted
his assent to my proposition when I had done, and in accordance with my plan
commenced backing toward the wall which I faced while I advanced slowly ahead
of him.
When we had reached a
point some ten feet from the secret doorway I halted my companion, and
cautioning him to remain absolutely motionless until I gave the prearranged
signal I quickly turned my back to the door through which I could almost feel
the burning and baleful eyes of our would-be executioner.
Instantly my own eyes
sought the mirror upon Tars Tarkas' back and in another second I was closely
watching the section of the wall which had been disgorging its savage terrors
upon us.
I had not long to wait,
for presently the golden surface commenced to move rapidly. Scarcely had it
started than I gave the signal to Tars Tarkas, simultaneously springing for the
receding half of the pivoting door. In like manner the Thark wheeled and leaped
for the opening being made by the inswinging section.
A single bound carried
me completely through into the adjoining room and brought me face to face with
the fellow whose cruel face I had seen before. He was about my own height and
well muscled and in every outward detail moulded precisely as are Earth men.
At his side hung a
long-sword, a short-sword, a dagger, and one of the destructive radium
revolvers that are common upon Mars.
The fact that I was
armed only with a long-sword, and so according to the laws and ethics of battle
everywhere upon Barsoom should only have been met with a similar or lesser
weapon, seemed to have no effect upon the moral sense of my enemy, for he
whipped out his revolver ere I scarce had touched the floor by his side, but an
uppercut from my long-sword sent it flying from his grasp before he could
discharge it.
Instantly he drew his
long-sword, and thus evenly armed we set to in earnest for one of the closest
battles I ever have fought.
The fellow was a
marvellous swordsman and evidently in practice, while I had not gripped the
hilt of a sword for ten long years before that morning.
But it did not take me
long to fall easily into my fighting stride, so that in a few minutes the man
began to realize that he had at last met his match.
His face became livid
with rage as he found my guard impregnable, while blood flowed from a dozen
minor wounds upon his face and body.
"Who are you,
white man?" he hissed. "That you are no Barsoomian from the outer
world is evident from your colour. And you are not of us."
His last statement was
almost a question.
"What if I were
from the Temple of Issus?" I hazarded on a wild guess.
"Fate
forfend!" he exclaimed, his face going white under the blood that now
nearly covered it.
I did not know how to
follow up my lead, but I carefully laid the idea away for future use should
circumstances require it. His answer indicated that for all he knew I might be
from the Temple of Issus and in it were men like unto myself, and either this
man feared the inmates of the temple or else he held their persons or their
power in such reverence that he trembled to think of the harm and indignities
he had heaped upon one of them.
But my present business
with him was of a different nature than that which requires any considerable
abstract reasoning; it was to get my sword between his ribs, and this I
succeeded in doing within the next few seconds, nor was I an instant too soon.
The chained prisoners
had been watching the combat in tense silence; not a sound had fallen in the
room other than the clashing of our contending blades, the soft shuffling of
our naked feet and the few whispered words we had hissed at each other through
clenched teeth the while we continued our mortal duel.
But as the body of my
antagonist sank an inert mass to the floor a cry of warning broke from one of
the female prisoners.
"Turn! Turn!
Behind you!" she shrieked, and as I wheeled at the first note of her
shrill cry I found myself facing a second man of the same race as he who lay at
my feet.
The fellow had crept
stealthily from a dark corridor and was almost upon me with raised sword ere I
saw him. Tars Tarkas was nowhere in sight and the secret panel in the wall,
through which I had come, was closed.
How I wished that he
were by my side now! I had fought almost continuously for many hours; I had
passed through such experiences and adventures as must sap the vitality of man,
and with all this I had not eaten for nearly twenty-four hours, nor slept.
I was fagged out, and
for the first time in years felt a question as to my ability to cope with an
antagonist; but there was naught else for it than to engage my man, and that as
quickly and ferociously as lay in me, for my only salvation was to rush him off
his feet by the impetuosity of my attack -- I could not hope to win a
long-drawn-out battle.
But the fellow was
evidently of another mind, for he backed and parried and parried and
sidestepped until I was almost completely fagged from the exertion of
attempting to finish him.
He was a more adroit
swordsman, if possible, than my previous foe, and I must admit that he led me a
pretty chase and in the end came near to making a sorry fool of me -- and a dead
one into the bargain.
I could feel myself
growing weaker and weaker, until at length objects commenced to blur before my
eyes and I staggered and blundered about more asleep than awake, and then it
was that he worked his pretty little coup that came near to losing me my life.
He had backed me around
so that I stood in front of the corpse of his fellow, and then he rushed me
suddenly so that I was forced back upon it, and as my heel struck it the
impetus of my body flung me backward across the dead man.
My head struck the hard
pavement with a resounding whack, and to that alone I owe my life, for it
cleared my brain and the pain roused my temper, so that I was equal for the
moment to tearing my enemy to pieces with my bare hands, and I verily believe
that I should have attempted it had not my right hand, in the act of raising my
body from the ground, come in contact with a bit of cold metal.
As the eyes of the
layman so is the hand of the fighting-man when it comes in contact with an
implement of his vocation, and thus I did not need to look or reason to know
that the dead man's revolver, lying where it had fallen when I struck it from
his grasp, was at my disposal.
The fellow whose ruse
had put me down was springing toward me, the point of his gleaming blade
directed straight at my heart, and as he came there rang from his lips the
cruel and mocking peal of laughter that I had heard within the Chamber of
Mystery.
And so he died, his
thin lips curled in the snarl of his hateful laugh, and a bullet from the
revolver of his dead companion bursting in his heart.
His body, borne by the
impetus of his headlong rush, plunged upon me. The hilt of his sword must have
struck my head, for with the impact of the corpse I lost consciousness.
IT WAS THE sound of
conflict that aroused me once more to the realities of life. For a moment I
could neither place my surroundings nor locate the sounds which had aroused me.
And then from beyond the blank wall beside which I lay I heard the shuffling of
feet, the snarling of grim beasts, the clank of metal accoutrements, and the
heavy breathing of a man.
As I rose to my feet I
glanced hurriedly about the chamber in which I had just encountered such a warm
reception. The prisoners and the savage brutes rested in their chains by the
opposite wall eyeing me with varying expressions of curiosity, sullen rage,
surprise, and hope.
The latter emotion
seemed plainly evident upon the handsome and intelligent face of the young red
Martian woman whose cry of warning had been instrumental in saving my life.
She was the perfect
type of that remarkably beautiful race whose outward appearance is identical
with the more god-like races of Earth men, except that this higher race of
Martians is of a light reddish copper colour. As she was entirely unadorned I
could not even guess her station in life, though it was evident that she was
either a prisoner or slave in her present environment.
It was several seconds
before the sounds upon the opposite side of the partition jolted my slowly
returning faculties into a realization of their probable import, and then of a
sudden I grasped the fact that they were caused by Tars Tarkas in what was
evidently a desperate struggle with wild beasts or savage men.
With a cry of
encouragement I threw my weight against the secret door, but as well have
assayed the down-hurling of the cliffs themselves. Then I sought feverishly for
the secret of the revolving panel, but my search was fruitless, and I was about
to raise my longsword against the sullen gold when the young woman prisoner
called out to me.
"Save thy sword, O
Mighty Warrior, for thou shalt need it more where it will avail to some purpose
-- shatter it not against senseless metal which yields better to the lightest
finger touch of one who knows its secret."
"Know you the
secret of it then?" I asked.
"yes; release me
and I will give you entrance to the other horror chamber, if you wish. The keys
to my fetters are upon the first dead of thy foemen. But why would you return
to face again the fierce banth, or whatever other form of destruction they have
loosed within that awful trap?"
"Because my friend
fights there alone," I answered, as I hastily sought and found the keys
upon the carcass of the dead custodian of this grim chamber of horrors.
There were many keys
upon the oval ring, but the fair Martian maid quickly selected that which
sprung the great lock at her waist, and freed she hurried toward the secret
panel.
Again she sought out a
key upon the ring. This time a slender, needle-like affair which she inserted
in an almost invisible hole in the wall. Instantly the door swung upon its
pivot, and the contiguous section of the floor upon which I was standing
carried me with it into the chamber where Tars Tarkas fought.
The great Thark stood
with his back against an angle of the walls, while facing him in a semi-circle
a half-dozen huge monsters crouched waiting for an opening. Their
blood-streaked heads and shoulders testified to the cause of their wariness as
well as to the swordsmanship of the green warrior whose glossy hide bore the
same mute but eloquent witness to the ferocity of the attacks that he had so
far withstood.
Sharp talons and cruel
fangs had torn leg, arm, and breast literally to ribbons. So weak was he from
continued exertion and loss of blood that but for the supporting wall I doubt
that he even could have stood erect. But with the tenacity and indomitable
courage of his kind he still faced his cruel and relentless foes -- the
personification of that ancient proverb of his tribe: "Leave to a Thark
his head and one hand and he may yet conquer."
As he saw me enter, a
grim smile touched those grim lips of his, but whether the smile signified
relief or merely amusement at the sight of my own bloody and dishevelled
condition I do not know.
As I was about to
spring into the conflict with my sharp long-sword I felt a gentle hand upon my
shoulder and turning found, to my surprise, that the young woman had followed
me into the chamber.
"Wait," she
whispered, "leave them to me," and pushing me advanced, all
defenceless and unarmed, upon the snarling banths.
When quite close to
them she spoke a single Martian word in low but peremptory tones. Like
lightning the great beasts wheeled upon her, and I looked to see her torn to
pieces before I could reach her side, but instead the creatures slunk to her
feet like puppies that expect a merited whipping.
Again she spoke to
them, but in tones so low I could not catch the words, and then she started
toward the opposite side of the chamber with the six mighty monsters trailing
at heel. One by one she sent them through the secret panel into the room
beyond, and when the last had passed from the chamber where we stood in
wide-eyed amazement she turned and smiled at us and then herself passed
through, leaving us alone.
For a moment neither of
us spoke. Then Tars Tarkas said:
"I heard the
fighting beyond the partition through which you passed, but I did not fear for
you, John Carter, until I heard the report of a revolver shot. I knew that
there lived no man upon all Barsoom who could face you with naked steel and
live, but the shot stripped the last vestige of hope from me, since you I knew
to be without firearms. Tell me of it."
I did as he bade, and
then together we sought the secret panel through which I had just entered the
apartment -- the one at the opposite end of the room from that through which
the girl had led her savage companions.
To our disappointment
the panel eluded our every effort to negotiate its secret lock. We felt that
once beyond it we might look with some little hope of success for a passage to
the outside world.
The fact that the
prisoners within were securely chained led us to believe that surely there must
be an avenue of escape from the terrible creatures which inhabited this
unspeakable place.
Again and again we
turned from one door to another, from the baffling golden panel at one end of
the chamber to its mate at the other -- equally baffling.
When we had about given
up all hope one of the panels turned silently toward us, and the young woman
who had led away the banths stood once more beside us.
"Who are
you?" she asked, "and what your mission, that you have the temerity
to attempt to escape from the Valley Dor and the death you have chosen?"
"I have chosen no
death, maiden," I replied. "I am not of Barsoom, nor have I taken yet
the voluntary pilgrimage upon the River Iss. My friend here is Jeddak of all
the Tharks, and though he has not yet expressed a desire to return to the
living world, I am taking him with me from the living lie that hath lured him
to this frightful place.
"I am of another
world. I am John Carter, Prince of the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium.
Perchance some faint rumour of me may have leaked within the confines of your
hellish abode."
She smiled.
"Yes," she
replied, "naught that passes in the world we have left is unknown here. I
have heard of you, many years ago. The therns have ofttimes wondered whither
you had flown, since you had neither taken the pilgrimage, nor could be found
upon the face of Barsoom."
"Tell me," I
said, "and who be you, and why a prisoner, yet with power over the
ferocious beasts of the place that denotes familiarity and authority far beyond
that which might be expected of a prisoner or a slave?"
"Slave I am,"
she answered. "For fifteen years a slave in this terrible place, and now
that they have tired of me and become fearful of the power which my knowledge
of their ways has given me I am but recently condemned to die the death."
She shuddered.
"What death?"
I asked.
"The Holy Therns
eat human flesh," she answered me; "but only that which has died
beneath the sucking lips of a plant man -- flesh from which the defiling blood
of life has been drawn. And to this cruel end I have been condemned. It was to
be within a few hours, had your advent not caused an interruption of their
plans."
"Was it then Holy
Therns who felt the weight of John Carter's hand?" I asked.
"Oh, no; those
whom you laid low are lesser therns; but of the same cruel and hateful race.
The Holy Therns abide upon the outer slopes of these grim hills, facing the
broad world from which they harvest their victims and their spoils.
"Labyrinthine
passages connect these caves with the luxurious palaces of the Holy Therns, and
through them pass upon their many duties the lesser therns, and hordes of
slaves, and prisoners, and fierce beasts; the grim inhabitants of this sunless
world.
"There be within
this vast network of winding passages and countless chambers men, women, and
beasts who, born within its dim and gruesome underworld, have never seen the
light of day -- nor ever shall.
"They are kept to
do the bidding of the race of therns; to furnish at once their sport and their
sustenance.
"Now and again
some hapless pilgrim, drifting out upon the silent sea from the cold Iss,
escapes the plant men and the great white apes that guard the Temple of Issus
and falls into the remorseless clutches of the therns; or, as was my
misfortune, is coveted by the Holy Thern who chances to be upon watch in the
balcony above the river where it issues from the bowels of the mountains
through the cliffs of gold to empty into the Lost Sea of Korus.
"All who reach the
Valley Dor are, by custom, the rightful prey of the plant men and the apes,
while their arms and ornaments become the portion of the therns; but if one
escapes the terrible denizens of the valley for even a few hours the therns may
claim such a one as their own. And again the Holy Thern on watch, should he see
a victim he covets, often tramples upon the rights of the unreasoning brutes of
the valley and takes his prize by foul means if he cannot gain it by fair.
"It is said that
occasionally some deluded victim of Barsoomian superstition will so far escape
the clutches of the countless enemies that beset his path from the moment that
he emerges from the subterranean passage through which the Iss flows for a
thousand miles before it enters the Valley Dor as to reach the very walls of
the Temple of Issus; but what fate awaits one there not even the Holy Therns
may guess, for who has passed within those gilded walls never has returned to unfold
the mysteries they have held since the beginning of time.
"The Temple of
Issus is to the therns what the Valley Dor is imagined by the peoples of the
outer world to be to them; it is the ultimate haven of peace, refuge, and
happiness to which they pass after this life and wherein an eternity of
eternities is spent amidst the delights of the flesh which appeal most strongly
to this race of mental giants and moral pygmies."
"The Temple of
Issus is, I take it, a heaven within a heaven," I said. "Let us hope
that there it will be meted to the therns as they have meted it here unto
others."
"Who knows?"
the girl murmured.
"The therns, I
judge from what you have said, are no less mortal than we; and yet have I
always heard them spoken of with the utmost awe and reverence by the people of
Barsoom, as one might speak of the gods themselves."
"The therns are
mortal," she replied. "They die from the same causes as you or I
might: those who do not live their allotted span of life, one thousand years,
when by the authority of custom they may take their way in happiness through
the long tunnel that leads to Issus.
"Those who die
before are supposed to spend the balance of their allotted time in the image of
a plant man, and it is for this reason that the plant men are held sacred by
the therns, since they believe that each of these hideous creatures was formerly
a thern."
"And should a
plant man die?" I asked.
"Should he die
before the expiration of the thousand years from the birth of the thern whose
immortality abides within him then the soul passes into a great white ape, but
should the ape die short of the exact hour that terminates the thousand years
the soul is for ever lost and passes for all eternity into the carcass of the
slimy and fearsome silian whose wriggling thousands seethe the silent sea
beneath the hurtling moons when the sun has gone and strange shapes walk
through the Valley Dor."
"We sent several
Holy Therns to the silians to-day, then," said Tars Tarkas, laughing.
"And so will your
death be the more terrible when it comes," said the maiden. "And come
it will -- you cannot escape."
"One has escaped,
centuries ago," I reminded her, "and what has been done may be done
again."
"It is useless
even to try," she answered hopelessly.
"But try we
shall," I cried, and you shall go with us, if you wish."
"To be put to
death by mine own people, and render my memory a disgrace to my family and my
nation? A Prince of the House of Tardos Mors should know better than to suggest
such a thing."
Tars Tarkas listened in
silence, but I could feel his eyes riveted upon me and I knew that he awaited
my answer as one might listen to the reading of his sentence by the foreman of
a jury.
What I advised the girl
to do would seal our fate as well, since if I bowed to the inevitable decree of
age-old superstition we must all remain and meet our fate in some horrible form
within this awful abode of horror and cruelty.
"We have the right
to escape if we can," I answered. "Our own moral senses will not be
offended if we succeed, for we know that the fabled life of love and peace in
the blessed Valley of Dor is a rank and wicked deception. We know that the
valley is not sacred; we know that the Holy Therns are not holy; that they are
a race of cruel and heartless mortals, knowing no more of the real life to come
than we do.
"Not only is it
our right to bend every effort to escape -- it is a solemn duty from which we
should not shrink even though we know that we should be reviled and tortured by
our own peoples when we returned to them.
"Only thus may we
carry the truth to those without, and though the likelihood of our narrative
being given credence is, I grant you, remote, so wedded are mortals to their
stupid infatuation for impossible superstitions, we should be craven cowards
indeed were we to shirk the plain duty which confronts us.
"Again there is a
chance that with the weight of the testimony of several of us the truth of our
statements may be accepted, and at least a compromise effected which will
result in the dispatching of an expedition of investigation to this hideous
mockery of heaven."
Both the girl and the green
warrior stood silent in thought for some moments. The former it was who
eventually broke the silence.
"Never had I
considered the matter in that light before," she said. "Indeed would
I give my life a thousand times if I could but save a single soul from the
awful life that I have led in this cruel place. Yes, you are right, and I will
go with you as far as we can go; but I doubt that we ever shall escape."
I turned an inquiring
glance toward the Thark.
"To the gates of
Issus, or to the bottom of Korus," spoke the green warrior; "to the
snows to the north or to the snows to the south, Tars Tarkas follows where John
Carter leads. I have spoken."
"Come, then,"
I cried, "we must make the start, for we could not be further from escape
than we now are in the heart of this mountain and within the four walls of this
chamber of death."
"Come, then,"
said the girl, "but do not flatter yourself that you can find no worse
place than this within the territory of the therns."
So saying she swung the
secret panel that separated us from the apartment in which I had found her, and
we stepped through once more into the presence of the other prisoners.
There were in all ten
red Martians, men and women, and when we had briefly explained our plan they
decided to join forces with us, though it was evident that it was with some
considerable misgivings that they thus tempted fate by opposing an ancient
superstition, even though each knew through cruel experience the fallacy of its
entire fabric.
Thuvia, the girl whom I
had first freed, soon had the others at liberty. Tars Tarkas and I stripped the
bodies of the two therns of their weapons, which included swords, daggers, and
two revolvers of the curious and deadly type manufactured by the red Martians.
We distributed the
weapons as far as they would go among our followers, giving the firearms to two
of the women; Thuvia being one so armed.
With the latter as our
guide we set off rapidly but cautiously through a maze of passages, crossing
great chambers hewn from the solid metal of the cliff, following winding
corridors, ascending steep inclines, and now and again concealing ourselves in
dark recesses at the sound of approaching footsteps.
Our destination, Thuvia
said, was a distant storeroom where arms and ammunition in plenty might be
found. From there she was to lead us to the summit of the cliffs, from where it
would require both wondrous wit and mighty fighting to win our way through the
very heart of the stronghold of the Holy Therns to the world without.
"And even then, O
Prince," she cried, "the arm of the Holy Thern is long. It reaches to
every nation of Barsoom. His secret temples are hidden in the heart of every
community. Wherever we go should we escape we shall find that word of our
coming has preceded us, and death awaits us before we may pollute the air with
our blasphemies."
We had proceeded for
possibly an hour without serious interruption, and Thuvia had just whispered to
me that we were approaching our first destination, when on entering a great
chamber we came upon a man, evidently a thern.
He wore in addition to
his leathern trappings and jewelled ornaments a great circlet of gold about his
brow in the exact centre of which was set an immense stone, the exact
counterpart of that which I had seen upon the breast of the little old man at
the atmosphere plant nearly twenty years before.
It is the one priceless
jewel of Barsoom. Only two are known to exist, and these were worn as the
insignia of their rank and position by the two old men in whose charge was
placed the operation of the great engines which pump the artificial atmosphere
to all parts of Mars from the huge atmosphere plant, the secret to whose mighty
portals placed in my possession the ability to save from immediate extinction
the life of a whole world.
The stone worn by the
thern who confronted us was of about the same size as that which I had seen
before; an inch in diameter I should say. It scintillated nine different and
distinct rays; the seven primary colours of our earthly prism and the two rays
which are unknown upon Earth, but whose wondrous beauty is indescribable.
As the thern saw us his
eyes narrowed to two nasty slits.
"Stop!" he cried.
"What means this, Thuvia?"
For answer the girl
raised her revolver and fired point-blank at him. Without a sound he sank to
the earth, dead.
"Beast!" she
hissed. "After all these years I am at last revenged."
Then as she turned
toward me, evidently with a word of explanation on her lips, her eyes suddenly
widened as they rested upon me, and with a little exclamation she started
toward me.
"O Prince,"
she cried, "Fate is indeed kind to us. The way is still difficult, but
through this vile thing upon the floor we may yet win to the outer world.
Notest thou not the remarkable resemblance between this Holy Thern and
thyself?"
The man was indeed of
my precise stature, nor were his eyes and features unlike mine; but his hair
was a mass of flowing yellow locks, like those of the two I had killed, while
mine is black and close cropped.
"What of the
resemblance?" I asked the girl Thuvia. "Do you wish me with my black,
short hair to pose as a yellow-haired priest of this infernal cult?"
She smiled, and for
answer approached the body of the man she had slain, and kneeling beside it
removed the circlet of gold from the forehead, and then to my utter amazement
lifted the entire scalp bodily from the corpse's head.
Rising, she advanced to
my side and placing the yellow wig over my black hair, crowned me with the
golden circlet set with the magnificent gem.
"Now don his
harness, Prince," she said, "and you may pass where you will in the
realms of the therns, for Sator Throg was a Holy Thern of the Tenth Cycle, and
mighty among his kind."
As I stooped to the
dead man to do her bidding I noted that not a hair grew upon his head, which
was quite as bald as an egg.
"They are all thus
from birth," explained Thuvia noting my surprise. "The race from
which they sprang were crowned with a luxuriant growth of golden hair, but for
many ages the present race has been entirely bald. The wig, however, has come
to be a part of their apparel, and so important a part do they consider it that
it is cause for the deepest disgrace were a thern to appear in public without
it."
In another moment I
stood garbed in the habiliments of a Holy Thern.
At Thuvia's suggestion
two of the released prisoners bore the body of the dead thern upon their
shoulders with us as we continued our journey toward the storeroom, which we
reached without further mishap.
Here the keys which
Thuvia bore from the dead thern of the prison vault were the means of giving us
immediate entrance to the chamber, and very quickly we were thoroughly
outfitted with arms and ammunition.
By this time I was so
thoroughly fagged out that I could go no further, so I threw myself upon the
floor, bidding Tars Tarkas to do likewise, and cautioning two of the released
prisoners to keep careful watch.
In an instant I was asleep.
HOW LONG I slept upon
the floor of the storeroom I do not know, but it must have been many hours.
I was awakened with a
start by cries of alarm, and scarce were my eyes opened, nor had I yet
sufficiently collected my wits to quite realize where I was, when a fusillade
of shots rang out, reverberating through the subterranean corridors in a series
of deafening echoes.
In an instant I was
upon my feet. A dozen lesser therns confronted us from a large doorway at the
opposite end of the storeroom from which we had entered. About me lay the
bodies of my companions, with the exception of Thuvia and Tars Tarkas, who,
like myself, had been asleep upon the floor and thus escaped the first raking
fire.
As I gained my feet the
therns lowered their wicked rifles, their faces distorted in mingled chagrin,
consternation, and alarm.
Instantly I rose to the
occasion.
"What means
this?" I cried in tones of fierce anger. "Is Sator Throg to be
murdered by his own vassals?"
"Have mercy, O
Master of the Tenth Cycle!" cried one of the fellows, while the others
edged toward the doorway as though to attempt a surreptitious escape from the
presence of the mighty one.
"Ask them their
mission here," whispered Thuvia at my elbow.
"What do you here,
fellows?" I cried.
"Two from the
outer world are at large within the dominions of the therns. We sought them at
the command of the Father of Therns. One was white with black hair, the other a
huge green warrior," and here the fellow cast a suspicious glance toward
Tars Tarkas.
"Here, then, is
one of them," spoke Thuvia, indicating the Thark, "and if you will
look upon this dead man by the door perhaps you will recognize the other. It
was left for Sator Throg and his poor slaves to accomplish what the lesser
therns of the guard were unable to do -- we have killed one and captured the
other; for this had Sator Throg given us our liberty. And now in your stupidity
have you come and killed all but myself, and like to have killed the mighty Sator
Throg himself."
The men looked very
sheepish and very scared.
"Had they not
better throw these bodies to the plant men and then return to their quarters, O
Mighty One?" asked Thuvia of me.
"Yes; do as Thuvia
bids you," I said.
As the men picked up the
bodies I noticed that the one who stooped to gather up the late Sator Throg
started as his closer scrutiny fell upon the upturned face, and then the fellow
stole a furtive, sneaking glance in my direction from the corner of his eye.
That he suspicioned
something of the truth I could have sworn; but that it was only a suspicion
which he did not dare voice was evidenced by his silence.
Again, as he bore the
body from the room, he shot a quick but searching glance toward me, and then
his eyes fell once more upon the bald and shiny dome of the dead man in his
arms. The last fleeting glimpse that I obtained of his profile as he passed
from my sight without the chamber revealed a cunning smile of triumph upon his
lips.
Only Tars Tarkas,
Thuvia, and I were left. The fatal marksmanship of the therns had snatched from
our companions whatever slender chance they had of gaining the perilous freedom
of the world without.
So soon as the last of
the gruesome procession had disappeared the girl urged us to take up our flight
once more.
She, too, had noted the
questioning attitude of the thern who had borne Sator Throg away.
"It bodes no good
for us, O Prince," she said. "For even though this fellow dared not
chance accusing you in error, there be those above with power sufficient to
demand a closer scrutiny, and that, Prince would indeed prove fatal."
I shrugged my
shoulders. It seemed that in any event the outcome of our plight must end in
death. I was refreshed from my sleep, but still weak from loss of blood. My
wounds were painful. No medicinal aid seemed possible. How I longed for the
almost miraculous healing power of the strange salves and lotions of the green
Martian women. In an hour they would have had me as new.
I was discouraged.
Never had a feeling of such utter hopelessness come over me in the face of
danger. Then the long flowing, yellow locks of the Holy Thern, caught by some
vagrant draught, blew about my face.
Might they not still
open the way of freedom? If we acted in time, might we not even yet escape
before the general alarm was sounded? We could at least try.
"What will the
fellow do first, Thuvia?" I asked. "How long will it be before they
may return for us?"
"He will go
directly to the Father of Therns, old Matai Shang. He may have to wait for an
audience, but since he is very high among the lesser therns, in fact as a
thorian among them, it will not be long that Matai Shang will keep him waiting.
"Then if the
Father of Therns puts credence in his story, another hour will see the
galleries and chambers, the courts and gardens, filled with searchers."
"What we do then
must be done within an hour. What is the best way, Thuvia, the shortest way out
of this celestial Hades?"
"Straight to the
top of the cliffs, Prince," she replied, "and then through the
gardens to the inner courts. From there our way will lie within the temples of
the therns and across them to the outer court. Then the ramparts -- O Prince,
it is hopeless. Ten thousand warriors could not hew a way to liberty from out
this awful place.
"Since the
beginning of time, little by little, stone by stone, have the therns been ever
adding to the defences of their stronghold. A continuous line of impregnable
fortifications circles the outer slopes of the Mountains of Otz.
"Within the temples
that lie behind the ramparts a million fighting-men are ever ready. The courts
and gardens are filled with slaves, with women and with children.
"None could go a
stone's throw without detection."
"If there is no
other way, Thuvia, why dwell upon the difficulties of this. We must face
them."
"Can we not better
make the attempt after dark?" asked Tars Tarkas. "There would seem to
be no chance by day."
"There would be a
little better chance by night, but even then the ramparts are well guarded;
possibly better than by day. There are fewer abroad in the courts and gardens,
though," said Thuvia.
"What is the
hour?" I asked.
"It was midnight
when you released me from my chains," said Thuvia. "Two hours later
we reached the storeroom. There you slept for fourteen hours. It must now be
nearly sundown again. Come, we will go to some nearby window in the cliff and
make sure."
So saying, she led the
way through winding corridors until at a sudden turn we came upon an opening
which overlooked the Valley Dor.
At our right the sun
was setting, a huge red orb, below the western range of Otz. A little below us
stood the Holy Thern on watch upon his balcony. His scarlet robe of office was
pulled tightly about him in anticipation of the cold that comes so suddenly
with darkness as the sun sets. So rare is the atmosphere of Mars that it
absorbs very little heat from the sun. During the daylight hours it is always
extremely hot; at night it is intensely cold. Nor does the thin atmosphere
refract the sun's rays or diffuse its light as upon Earth. There is no twilight
on Mars. When the great orb of day disappears beneath the horizon the effect is
precisely as that of the extinguishing of a single lamp within a chamber. From
brilliant light you are plunged without warning into utter darkness. Then the
moons come; the mysterious, magic moons of Mars, hurtling like monster meteors
low across the face of the planet.
The declining sun
lighted brilliantly the eastern banks of Korus, the crimson sward, the gorgeous
forest. Beneath the trees we saw feeding many herds of plant men. The adults
stood aloft upon their toes and their mighty tails, their talons pruning every
available leaf and twig. It was then that I understood the careful trimming of
the trees which had led me to form the mistaken idea when first I opened my
eyes upon the grove that it was the playground of a civilized people.
As we watched, our eyes
wandered to the rolling Iss, which issued from the base of the cliffs beneath
us. Presently there emerged from the mountain a canoe laden with lost souls
from the outer world. There were a dozen of them. All were of the highly
civilized and cultured race of red men who are dominant on Mars.
The eyes of the herald
upon the balcony beneath us fell upon the doomed party as soon as did ours. He
raised his head and leaning far out over the low rail that rimmed his dizzy
perch, voiced the shrill, weird wail that called the demons of this hellish
place to the attack.
For an instant the
brutes stood with stiffly erected ears, then they poured from the grove toward
the river's bank, covering the distance with great, ungainly leaps.
The party had landed
and was standing on the sward as the awful horde came in sight. There was a
brief and futile effort of defence. Then silence as the huge, repulsive shapes
covered the bodies of their victims and scores of sucking mouths fastened
themselves to the flesh of their prey.
I turned away in
disgust.
"Their part is
soon over," said Thuvia. "The great white apes get the flesh when the
plant men have drained the arteries. Look, they are coming now."
As I turned my eyes in
the direction the girl indicated, I saw a dozen of the great white monsters
running across the valley toward the river bank. Then the sun went down and
darkness that could almost be felt engulfed us.
Thuvia lost no time in
leading us toward the corridor which winds back and forth up through the cliffs
toward the surface thousands of feet above the level on which we had been.
Twice great banths,
wandering loose through the galleries, blocked our progress, but in each
instance Thuvia spoke a low word of command and the snarling beasts slunk
sullenly away.
"If you can
dissolve all our obstacles as easily as you master these fierce brutes I can
see no difficulties in our way," I said to the girl, smiling. "How do
you do it?"
She laughed, and then
shuddered.
"I do not quite
know," she said. "When first I came here I angered Sator Throg,
because I repulsed him. He ordered me to be thrown into one of the great pits
in the inner gardens. It was filled with banths. In my own country I had been
accustomed to command. Something in my voice, I do not know what, cowed the
beasts as they sprang to attack me.
"Instead of
tearing me to pieces, as Sator Throg had desired, they fawned at my feet. So
greatly were Sator Throg and his friends amused by the sight that they kept me
to train and handle the terrible creatures. I know them all by name. There are
many of them wandering through these lower regions. They are the scavengers.
Many prisoners die here in their chains. The banths solve the problem of
sanitation, at least in this respect.
"In the gardens
and temples above they are kept in pits. The therns fear them. It is because of
the banths that they seldom venture below ground except as their duties call
them."
An idea occurred to me,
suggested by what Thuvia had just said.
"Why not take a
number of banths and set them loose before us above ground?" I asked.
Thuvia laughed.
"It would distract
attention from us, I am sure," she said.
She commenced calling
in a low singsong voice that was half purr. She continued this as we wound our
tedious way through the maze of subterranean passages and chambers.
Presently soft, padded
feet sounded close behind us, and as I turned I saw a pair of great, green eyes
shining in the dark shadows at our rear. From a diverging tunnel a sinuous,
tawny form crept stealthily toward us.
Low growls and angry snarls
assailed our ears on every side as we hastened on and one by one the ferocious
creatures answered the call of their mistress.
She spoke a word to
each as it joined us. Like well-schooled terriers, they paced the corridors
with us, but I could not help but note the lathering jowls, nor the hungry
expressions with which they eyed Tars Tarkas and myself.
Soon we were entirely
surrounded by some fifty of the brutes. Two walked close on either side of
Thuvia, as guards might walk. The sleek sides of others now and then touched my
own naked limbs. It was a strange experience; the almost noiseless passage of
naked human feet and padded paws; the golden walls splashed with precious
stones; the dim light cast by the tiny radium bulbs set at considerable distances
along the roof; the huge, maned beasts of prey crowding with low growls about
us; the mighty green warrior towering high above us all; myself crowned with
the priceless diadem of a Holy Thern; and leading the procession the beautiful
girl, Thuvia.
I shall not soon forget
it.
Presently we approached
a great chamber more brightly lighted than the corridors. Thuvia halted us.
Quietly she stole toward the entrance and glanced within. Then she motioned us
to follow her.
The room was filled
with specimens of the strange beings that inhabit this underworld; a
heterogeneous collection of hybrids -- the offspring of the prisoners from the
outside world; red and green Martians and the white race of therns.
Constant confinement
below ground had wrought odd freaks upon their skins. They more resemble
corpses than living beings. Many are deformed, others maimed, while the
majority, Thuvia explained, are sightless.
As they lay sprawled
about the floor, sometimes overlapping one another, again in heaps of several
bodies, they suggested instantly to me the grotesque illustrations that I had
seen in copies of Dante's Inferno, and what more fitting comparison? Was this
not indeed a veritable hell, peopled by lost souls, dead and damned beyond all
hope?
Picking our way
carefully we threaded a winding path across the chamber, the great banths
sniffing hungrily at the tempting prey spread before them in such tantalizing
and defenceless profusion.
Several times we passed
the entrances to other chambers similarly peopled, and twice again we were
compelled to cross directly through them. In others were chained prisoners and
beasts.
"Why is it that we
see no therns?" I asked of Thuvia.
"They seldom
traverse the underworld at night, for then it is that the great banths prowl
the dim corridors seeking their prey. The therns fear the awful denizens of
this cruel and hopeless world that they have fostered and allowed to grow
beneath their feet. The prisoners even sometimes turn upon them and rend them.
The thern can never tell from what dark shadow an assassin may spring upon his
back.
"By day it is
different. Then the corridors and chambers are filled with guards passing to
and fro; slaves from the temples above come by hundreds to the granaries and
storerooms. All is life then. You did not see it because I led you not in the
beaten tracks, but through roundabout passages seldom used. Yet it is possible
that we may meet a thern even yet. They do occasionally find it necessary to
come here after the sun has set. Because of this I have moved with such great
caution."
But we reached the
upper galleries without detection and presently Thuvia halted us at the foot of
a short, steep ascent.
"Above us,"
she said, "is a doorway which opens on to the inner gardens. I have
brought you thus far. From here on for four miles to the outer ramparts our way
will be beset by countless dangers. Guards patrol the courts, the temples, the
gardens. Every inch of the ramparts themselves is beneath the eye of a
sentry."
I could not understand
the necessity for such an enormous force of armed men about a spot so
surrounded by mystery and superstition that not a soul upon Barsoom would have
dared to approach it even had they known its exact location. I questioned
Thuvia, asking her what enemies the therns could fear in their impregnable
fortress.
We had reached the
doorway now and Thuvia was opening it.
"They fear the
black pirates of Barsoom, O Prince," she said, "from whom may our
first ancestors preserve us."
The door swung open;
the smell of growing things greeted my nostrils; the cool night air blew
against my cheek. The great banths sniffed the unfamiliar odours, and then with
a rush they broke past us with low growls, swarming across the gardens beneath
the lurid light of the nearer moon.
Suddenly a great cry
arose from the roofs of the temples; a cry of alarm and warning that, taken up
from point to point, ran off to the east and to the west, from temple, court,
and rampart, until it sounded as a dim echo in the distance.
The great Thark's long-sword
leaped from its scabbard; Thuvia shrank shuddering to my side.
WHAT IS IT?" I
asked of the girl.
For answer she pointed
to the sky.
I looked, and there,
above us, I saw shadowy bodies flitting hither and thither high over temple,
court, and garden.
Almost immediately
flashes of light broke from these strange objects. There was a roar of
musketry, and then answering flashes and roars from temple and rampart.
"The black pirates
of Barsoom, O Prince," said Thuvia.
In great circles the
air craft of the marauders swept lower and lower toward the defending forces of
the therns.
Volley after volley
they vomited upon the temple guards; volley on volley crashed through the thin
air toward the fleeting and illusive fliers.
As the pirates swooped
closer toward the ground, thern soldiery poured from the temples into the
gardens and courts. The sight of them in the open brought a score of fliers
darting toward us from all directions.
The therns fired upon
them through shields affixed to their rifles, but on, steadily on, came the
grim, black craft. They were small fliers for the most part, built for two to
three men. A few larger ones there were, but these kept high aloft dropping bombs
upon the temples from their keel batteries.
At length, with a
concerted rush, evidently in response to a signal of command, the pirates in
our immediate vicinity dashed recklessly to the ground in the very midst of the
thern soldiery.
Scarcely waiting for
their craft to touch, the creatures manning them leaped among the therns with
the fury of demons. Such fighting! Never had I witnessed its like before. I had
thought the green Martians the most ferocious warriors in the universe, but the
awful abandon with which the black pirates threw themselves upon their foes
transcended everything I ever before had seen.
Beneath the brilliant
light of Mars' two glorious moons the whole scene presented itself in vivid
distinctness. The golden-haired, white-skinned therns battling with desperate
courage in hand-to-hand conflict with their ebony-skinned foemen.
Here a little knot of
struggling warriors trampled a bed of gorgeous pimalia; there the curved sword
of a black man found the heart of a thern and left its dead foeman at the foot
of a wondrous statue carved from a living ruby; yonder a dozen therns pressed a
single pirate back upon a bench of emerald, upon whose iridescent surface a
strangely beautiful Barsoomian design was traced out in inlaid diamonds.
A little to one side
stood Thuvia, the Thark, and I. The tide of battle had not reached us, but the
fighters from time to time swung close enough that we might distinctly note
them.
The black pirates
interested me immensely. I had heard vague rumours, little more than legends
they were, during my former life on Mars; but never had I seen them, nor talked
with one who had.
They were popularly
supposed to inhabit the lesser moon, from which they descended upon Barsoom at
long intervals. Where they visited they wrought the most horrible atrocities,
and when they left carried away with them firearms and ammunition, and young
girls as prisoners. These latter, the rumour had it, they sacrificed to some
terrible god in an orgy which ended in the eating of their victims.
I had an excellent
opportunity to examine them, as the strife occasionally brought now one and now
another close to where I stood. They were large men, possibly six feet and over
in height. Their features were clear cut and handsome in the extreme; their
eyes were well set and large, though a slight narrowness lent them a crafty
appearance; the iris, as well as I could determine by moonlight, was of extreme
blackness, while the eyeball itself was quite white and clear. The physical
structure of their bodies seemed identical with those of the therns, the red
men, and my own. Only in the colour of their skin did they differ materially
from us; that is of the appearance of polished ebony, and odd as it may seem
for a Southerner to say it, adds to rather than detracts from their marvellous
beauty.
But if their bodies are
divine, their hearts, apparently, are quite the reverse. Never did I witness
such a malign lust for blood as these demons of the outer air evinced in their
mad battle with the therns.
All about us in the
garden lay their sinister craft, which the therns for some reason, then
unaccountable to me, made no effort to injure. Now and again a black warrior
would rush from a near by temple bearing a young woman in his arms. Straight
for his flier he would leap while those of his comrades who fought near by
would rush to cover his escape.
The therns on their
side would hasten to rescue the girl, and in an instant the two would be
swallowed in the vortex of a maelstrom of yelling devils, hacking and hewing at
one another, like fiends incarnate.
But always, it seemed,
were the black pirates of Barsoom victorious, and the girl, brought
miraculously unharmed through the conflict, borne away into the outer darkness
upon the deck of a swift flier.
Fighting similar to
that which surrounded us could be heard in both directions as far as sound
carried, and Thuvia told me that the attacks of the black pirates were usually
made simultaneously along the entire ribbon-like domain of the therns, which
circles the Valley Dor on the outer slopes of the Mountains of Otz.
As the fighting receded
from our position for a moment, Thuvia turned toward me with a question.
"Do you understand
now, O Prince," she said, "why a million warriors guard the domains
of the Holy Therns by day and by night?"
"The scene you are
witnessing now is but a repetition of what I have seen enacted a score of times
during the fifteen years I have been a prisoner here. From time immemorial the
black pirates of Barsoom have preyed upon the Holy Therns.
"Yet they never
carry their expeditions to a point, as one might readily believe it was in
their power to do, where the extermination of the race of therns is threatened.
It is as though they but utilized the race as playthings, with which they satisfy
their ferocious lust for fighting; and from whom they collect toll in arms and
ammunition and in prisoners."
"Why don't they
jump in and destroy these fliers?" I asked. "That would soon put a
stop to the attacks, or at least the blacks would scarce be so bold. Why, see
how perfectly unguarded they leave their craft, as though they were lying safe
in their own hangars at home."
"The therns do not
dare. They tried it once, ages ago, but the next night and for a whole moon
thereafter a thousand great black battleships circled the Mountains of Otz,
pouring tons of projectiles upon the temples, the gardens, and the courts,
until every thern who was not killed was driven for safety into the
subterranean galleries.
"The therns know
that they live at all only by the sufferance of the black men. They were near
to extermination that once and they will not venture risking it again."
As she ceased talking a
new element was instilled into the conflict. It came from a source equally
unlooked for by either thern or pirate. The great banths which we had liberated
in the garden had evidently been awed at first by the sound of the battle, the
yelling of the warriors and the loud report of rifle and bomb.
But now they must have
become angered by the continuous noise and excited by the smell of new blood,
for all of a sudden a great form shot from a clump of low shrubbery into the
midst of a struggling mass of humanity. A horrid scream of bestial rage broke
from the banth as he felt warm flesh beneath his powerful talons.
As though his cry was
but a signal to the others, the entire great pack hurled themselves among the
fighters. Panic reigned in an instant. Thern and black man turned alike against
the common enemy, for the banths showed no partiality toward either.
The awful beasts bore
down a hundred men by the mere weight of their great bodies as they hurled
themselves into the thick of the fight. Leaping and clawing, they mowed down
the warriors with their powerful paws, turning for an instant to rend their
victims with frightful fangs.
The scene was
fascinating in its terribleness, but suddenly it came to me that we were
wasting valuable time watching this conflict, which in itself might prove a
means of our escape.
The therns were so
engaged with their terrible assailants that now, if ever, escape should be
comparatively easy. I turned to search for an opening through the contending
hordes. If we could but reach the ramparts we might find that the pirates
somewhere had thinned the guarding forces and left a way open to us to the
world without.
As my eyes wandered
about the garden, the sight of the hundreds of air craft lying unguarded around
us suggested the simplest avenue to freedom. Why it had not occurred to me
before! I was thoroughly familiar with the mechanism of every known make of
flier on Barsoom. For nine years I had sailed and fought with the navy of
Helium. I had raced through space on the tiny one-man air scout and I had
commanded the greatest battleship that ever had floated in the thin air of dying
Mars.
To think, with me, is
to act. Grasping Thuvia by the arm, I whispered to Tars Tarkas to follow me.
Quickly we glided toward a small flier which lay furthest from the battling
warriors. Another instant found us huddled on the tiny deck. My hand was on the
starting lever. I pressed my thumb upon the button which controls the ray of
repulsion, that splendid discovery of the Martians which permits them to
navigate the thin atmosphere of their planet in huge ships that dwarf the
dreadnoughts of our earthly navies into pitiful significance.
The craft swayed
slightly but she did not move. Then a new cry of warning broke upon our ears.
Turning, I saw a dozen black pirates dashing toward us from the melee. We had
been discovered. With shrieks of rage the demons sprang for us. With frenzied
insistence I continued to press the little button which should have sent us
racing out into space, but still the vessel refused to budge. Then it came to
me -- the reason that she would not rise.
We had stumbled upon a
two-man flier. Its ray tanks were charged only with sufficient repulsive energy
to lift two ordinary men. The Thark's great weight was anchoring us to our
doom.
The blacks were nearly
upon us. There was not an instant to be lost in hesitation or doubt.
I pressed the button
far in and locked it. Then I set the lever at high speed and as the blacks came
yelling upon us I slipped from the craft's deck and with drawn long-sword met
the attack.
At the same moment a
girl's shriek rang out behind me and an instant later, as the blacks fell upon
me. I heard far above my head, and faintly, in Thuvia's voice: "My Prince,
O my Prince; I would rather remain and die with -- " But the rest was lost
in the noise of my assailants.
I knew though that my
ruse had worked and that temporarily at least Thuvia and Tars Tarkas were safe,
and the means of escape was theirs.
For a moment it seemed
that I could not withstand the weight of numbers that confronted me, but again,
as on so many other occasions when I had been called upon to face fearful odds
upon this planet of warriors and fierce beasts, I found that my earthly
strength so far transcended that of my opponents that the odds were not so
greatly against me as they appeared.
My seething blade wove
a net of death about me. For an instant the blacks pressed close to reach me
with their shorter swords, but presently they gave back, and the esteem in
which they suddenly had learned to hold my sword arm was writ large upon each
countenance.
I knew though that it
was but a question of minutes before their greater numbers would wear me down,
or get around my guard. I must go down eventually to certain death before them.
I shuddered at the thought of it, dying thus in this terrible place where no
word of my end ever could reach my Dejah Thoris. Dying at the hands of nameless
black men in the gardens of the cruel therns.
Then my old-time spirit
reasserted itself. The fighting blood of my Virginian sires coursed hot through
my veins. The fierce blood lust and the joy of battle surged over me. The
fighting smile that has brought consternation to a thousand foemen touched my
lips. I put the thought of death out of my mind, and fell upon my antagonists
with fury that those who escaped will remember to their dying day.
That others would press
to the support of those who faced me I knew, so even as I fought I kept my wits
at work, searching for an avenue of escape.
It came from an
unexpected quarter out of the black night behind me. I had just disarmed a huge
fellow who had given me a desperate struggle, and for a moment the blacks stood
back for a breathing spell.
They eyed me with
malignant fury, yet withal there was a touch of respect in their demeanour.
"Thern," said
one, "you fight like a Dator. But for your detestable yellow hair and your
white skin you would be an honour to the First Born of Barsoom."
"I am no
thern," I said, and was about to explain that I was from another world,
thinking that by patching a truce with these fellows and fighting with them
against the therns I might enlist their aid in regaining my liberty. But just
at that moment a heavy object smote me a resounding whack between my shoulders
that nearly felled me to the ground.
As I turned to meet
this new enemy an object passed over my shoulder, striking one of my assailants
squarely in the face and knocking him senseless to the sward. At the same
instant I saw that the thing that had struck us was the trailing anchor of a
rather fair-sized air vessel; possibly a ten-man cruiser.
The ship was floating
slowly above us, not more than fifty feet over our heads. Instantly the one
chance for escape that it offered presented itself to me. The vessel was slowly
rising and now the anchor was beyond the blacks who faced me and several feet
above their heads.
With a bound that left
them gaping in wide-eyed astonishment I sprang completely over them. A second
leap carried me just high enough to grasp the now rapidly receding anchor.
But I was successful,
and there I hung by one hand, dragging through the branches of the higher
vegetation of the gardens, while my late foemen shrieked and howled beneath me.
Presently the vessel
veered toward the west and then swung gracefully to the south. In another
instant I was carried beyond the crest of the Golden Cliffs, out over the
Valley Dor, where, six thousand feet below me, the Lost Sea of Korus lay
shimmering in the moonlight.
Carefully I climbed to
a sitting posture across the anchor's arms. I wondered if by chance the vessel
might be deserted. I hoped so. Or possibly it might belong to a friendly
people, and have wandered by accident almost within the clutches of the pirates
and the therns. The fact that it was retreating from the scene of battle lent
colour to this hypothesis.
But I decided to know
positively, and at once, so, with the greatest caution, I commenced to climb
slowly up the anchor chain toward the deck above me.
One hand had just
reached for the vessel's rail and found it when a fierce black face was thrust
over the side and eyes filled with triumphant hate looked into mine.
FOR AN INSTANT the
black pirate and I remained motionless, glaring into each other's eyes. Then a
grim smile curled the handsome lips above me, as an ebony hand came slowly in
sight from above the edge of the deck and the cold, hollow eye of a revolver
sought the centre of my forehead.
Simultaneously my free
hand shot out for the black throat, just within reach, and the ebony finger
tightened on the trigger. The pirate's hissing, "Die, cursed thern,"
was half choked in his windpipe by my clutching fingers. The hammer fell with a
futile click upon an empty chamber.
Before he could fire
again I had pulled him so far over the edge of the deck that he was forced to
drop his firearm and clutch the rail with both hands.
My grasp upon his
throat effectually prevented any outcry, and so we struggled in grim silence;
he to tear away from my hold, I to drag him over to his death.
His face was taking on
a livid hue, his eyes were bulging from their sockets. It was evident to him
that he soon must die unless he tore loose from the steel fingers that were
choking the life from him. With a final effort he threw himself further back
upon the deck, at the same instant releasing his hold upon the rail to tear
frantically with both hands at my fingers in an effort to drag them from his
throat.
That little second was
all that I awaited. With one mighty downward surge I swept him clear of the
deck. His falling body came near to tearing me from the frail hold that my
single free hand had upon the anchor chain and plunging me with him to the
waters of the sea below.
I did not relinquish my
grasp upon him, however, for I knew that a single shriek from those lips as he
hurtled to his death in the silent waters of the sea would bring his comrades
from above to avenge him.
Instead I held grimly
to him, choking, ever choking, while his frantic struggles dragged me lower and
lower toward the end of the chain.
Gradually his
contortions became spasmodic, lessening by degrees until they ceased entirely.
Then I released my hold upon him and in an instant he was swallowed by the
black shadows far below.
Again I climbed to the
ship's rail. This time I succeeded in raising my eyes to the level of the deck,
where I could take a careful survey of the conditions immediately confronting
me.
The nearer moon had
passed below the horizon, but the clear effulgence of the further satellite
bathed the deck of the cruiser, bringing into sharp relief the bodies of six or
eight black men sprawled about in sleep.
Huddled close to the
base of a rapid fire gun was a young white girl, securely bound. Her eyes were
widespread in an expression of horrified anticipation and fixed directly upon
me as I came in sight above the edge of the deck.
Unutterable relief
instantly filled them as they fell upon the mystic jewel which sparkled in the
centre of my stolen head-piece. She did not speak. Instead her eyes warned me
to beware the sleeping figures that surrounded her.
Noiselessly I gained
the deck. The girl nodded to me to approach her. As I bent low she whispered to
me to release her.
"I can aid
you," she said, "and you will need all the aid available when they
awaken."
"Some of them will
awake in Korus," I replied smiling.
She caught the meaning
of my words, and the cruelty of her answering smile horrified me. One is not
astonished by cruelty in a hideous face, but when it touches the features of a
goddess whose fine-chiselled lineaments might more fittingly portray love and
beauty, the contrast is appalling.
Quickly I released her.
"Give me a
revolver," she whispered. "I can use that upon those your sword does
not silence in time."
I did as she bid. Then
I turned toward the distasteful work that lay before me. This was no time for
fine compunctions, nor for a chivalry that these cruel demons would neither
appreciate nor reciprocate.
Stealthily I approached
the nearest sleeper. When he awoke he was well on his journey to the bosom of
Korus. His piercing shriek as consciousness returned to him came faintly up to
us from the black depths beneath.
The second awoke as I
touched him, and, though I succeeded in hurling him from the cruiser's deck,
his wild cry of alarm brought the remaining pirates to their feet. There were
five of them.
As they arose the
girl's revolver spoke in sharp staccato and one sank back to the deck again to
rise no more.
The others rushed madly
upon me with drawn swords. The girl evidently dared not fire for fear of
wounding me, but I saw her sneak stealthily and cat-like toward the flank of
the attackers. Then they were on me.
For a few minutes I
experienced some of the hottest fighting I had ever passed through. The
quarters were too small for foot work. It was stand your ground and give and
take. At first I took considerably more than I gave, but presently I got
beneath one fellow's guard and had the satisfaction of seeing him collapse upon
the deck.
The others redoubled
their efforts. The crashing of their blades upon mine raised a terrific din
that might have been heard for miles through the silent night. Sparks flew as
steel smote steel, and then there was the dull and sickening sound of a
shoulder bone parting beneath the keen edge of my Martian sword.
Three now faced me, but
the girl was working her way to a point that would soon permit her to reduce
the number by one at least. Then things happened with such amazing rapidity
that I can scarce comprehend even now all that took place in that brief
instant.
The three rushed me
with the evident purpose of forcing me back the few steps that would carry my
body over the rail into the void below. At the same instant the girl fired and
my sword arm made two moves. One man dropped with a bullet in his brain; a
sword flew clattering across the deck and dropped over the edge beyond as I
disarmed one of my opponents and the third went down with my blade buried to
the hilt in his breast and three feet of it protruding from his back, and
falling wrenched the sword from my grasp.
Disarmed myself, I now
faced my remaining foeman, whose own sword lay somewhere thousands of feet
below us, lost in the Lost Sea.
The new conditions
seemed to please my adversary, for a smile of satisfaction bared his gleaming
teeth as he rushed at me bare-handed. The great muscles which rolled beneath
his glossy black hide evidently assured him that here was easy prey, not worth
the trouble of drawing the dagger from his harness.
I let him come almost
upon me. Then I ducked beneath his outstretched arms, at the same time
sidestepping to the right. Pivoting on my left toe, I swung a terrific right to
his jaw, and, like a felled ox, he dropped in his tracks.
A low, silvery laugh
rang out behind me.
"You are no
thern," said the sweet voice of my companion, "for all your golden
locks or the harness of Sator Throg. Never lived there upon all Barsoom before
one who could fight as you have fought this night. Who are you?"
"I am John Carter,
Prince of the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium," I replied.
"And whom," I added, "has the honour of serving been accorded
me?"
She hesitated a moment
before speaking. Then she asked:
"You are no thern.
Are you an enemy of the therns?"
"I have been in
the territory of the therns for a day and a half. During that entire time my
life has been in constant danger. I have been harassed and persecuted. Armed
men and fierce beasts have been set upon me. I had no quarrel with the therns
before, but can you wonder that I feel no great love for them now? I have
spoken."
She looked at me
intently for several minutes before she replied. It was as though she were
attempting to read my inmost soul, to judge my character and my standards of
chivalry in that long-drawn, searching gaze.
Apparently the
inventory satisfied her.
"I am Phaidor,
daughter of Matai Shang, Holy Hekkador of the Holy Therns, Father of Therns,
Master of Life and Death upon Barsoom, Brother of Issus, Prince of Life
Eternal."
At that moment I
noticed that the black I had dropped with my fist was commencing to show signs
of returning consciousness. I sprang to his side. Stripping his harness from
him I securely bound his hands behind his back, and after similarly fastening
his feet tied him to a heavy gun carriage.
"Why not the
simpler way?" asked Phaidor.
"I do not
understand. What 'simpler way'?" I replied.
With a slight shrug of
her lovely shoulders she made a gesture with her hands personating the casting
of something over the craft's side.
"I am no
murderer," I said. "I kill in self-defence only."
She looked at me
narrowly. Then she puckered those divine brows of hers, and shook her head. She
could not comprehend.
Well, neither had my
own Dejah Thoris been able to understand what to her had seemed a foolish and
dangerous policy toward enemies. Upon Barsoom, quarter is neither asked nor
given, and each dead man means so much more of the waning resources of this
dying planet to be divided amongst those who survive.
But there seemed a
subtle difference here between the manner in which this girl contemplated the
dispatching of an enemy and the tender-hearted regret of my own princess for
the stern necessity which demanded it.
I think that Phaidor
regretted the thrill that the spectacle would have afforded her rather than the
fact that my decision left another enemy alive to threaten us.
The man had now
regained full possession of his faculties, and was regarding us intently from
where he lay bound upon the deck. He was a handsome fellow, clean limbed and
powerful, with an intelligent face and features of such exquisite chiselling that
Adonis himself might have envied him.
The vessel, unguided,
had been moving slowly across the valley; but now I thought it time to take the
helm and direct her course. Only in a very general way could I guess the
location of the Valley Dor. That it was far south of the equator was evident
from the constellations, but I was not sufficiently a Martian astronomer to
come much closer than a rough guess without the splendid charts and delicate
instruments with which, as an officer in the Heliumite Navy, I had formerly
reckoned the positions of the vessels on which I sailed.
That a northerly course
would quickest lead me toward the more settled portions of the planet
immediately decided the direction that I should steer. Beneath my hand the
cruiser swung gracefully about. Then the button which controlled the repulsive
rays sent us soaring far out into space. With speed lever pulled to the last
notch, we raced toward the north as we rose ever farther and farther above that
terrible valley of death.
As we passed at a dizzy
height over the narrow domains of the therns the flash of powder far below bore
mute witness to the ferocity of the battle that still raged along that cruel
frontier. No sound of conflict reached our ears, for in the rarefied atmosphere
of our great altitude no sound wave could penetrate; they were dissipated in
thin air far below us.
It became intensely
cold. Breathing was difficult. The girl, Phaidor, and the black pirate kept
their eyes glued upon me. At length the girl spoke.
"Unconsciousness
comes quickly at this altitude," she said quietly. "Unless you are
inviting death for us all you had best drop, and that quickly."
There was no fear in
her voice. It was as one might say: "You had better carry an umbrella. It
is going to rain."
I dropped the vessel
quickly to a lower level. Nor was I a moment too soon. The girl had swooned.
The black, too, was
unconscious, while I, myself, retained my senses, I think, only by sheer will.
The one on whom all responsibility rests is apt to endure the most.
We were swinging along
low above the foothills of the Otz. It was comparatively warm and there was
plenty of air for our starved lungs, so I was not surprised to see the black
open his eyes, and a moment later the girl also.
"It was a close
call," she said.
"It has taught me
two things though," I replied.
"What?"
"That even
Phaidor, daughter of the Master of Life and Death, is mortal," I said
smiling.
"There is
immortality only in Issus," she replied. "And Issus is for the race
of therns alone. Thus am I immortal."
I caught a fleeting
grin passing across the features of the black as he heard her words. I did not
then understand why he smiled. Later I was to learn, and she, too, in a most
horrible manner.
"If the other thing
you have just learned," she continued, "has led to as erroneous
deductions as the first you are little richer in knowledge than you were
before."
"The other,"
I replied, "is that our dusky friend here does not hail from the nearer
moon -- he was like to have died at a few thousand feet above Barsoom. Had we
continued the five thousand miles that lie between Thuria and the planet he
would have been but the frozen memory of a man."
Phaidor looked at the
black in evident astonishment.
"If you are not of
Thuria, then where?" she asked.
He shrugged his
shoulders and turned his eyes elsewhere, but did not reply.
The girl stamped her
little foot in a peremptory manner.
"The daughter of
Matai Shang is not accustomed to having her queries remain unanswered,"
she said. "One of the lesser breed should feel honoured that a member of
the holy race that was born to inherit life eternal should deign even to notice
him."
Again the black smiled
that wicked, knowing smile.
"Xodar, Dator of
the First Born of Barsoom, is accustomed to give commands, not to receive
them," replied the black pirate. Then, turning to me, "What are your
intentions concerning me?"
"I intend taking
you both back to Helium," I said. "No harm will come to you. You will
find the red men of Helium a kindly and magnanimous race, but if they listen to
me there will be no more voluntary pilgrimages down the river Iss, and the
impossible belief that they have cherished for ages will be shattered into a
thousand pieces."
"Are you of
Helium?" he asked.
"I am a Prince of
the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium," I replied, "but I am not
of Barsoom. I am of another world."
Xodar looked at me
intently for a few moments.
"I can well
believe that you are not of Barsoom," he said at length. "None of
this world could have bested eight of the First Born single-handed. But how is
it that you wear the golden hair and the jewelled circlet of a Holy
Thern?" He emphasized the word holy with a touch of irony.
"I had forgotten
them," I said. "They are the spoils of conquest," and with a
sweep of my hand I removed the disguise from my head.
When the black's eyes
fell on my close-cropped black hair they opened in astonishment. Evidently he
had looked for the bald pate of a thern.
"You are indeed of
another world," he said, a touch of awe in his voice. "With the skin
of a thern, the black hair of a First Born and the muscles of a dozen Dators it
was no disgrace even for Xodar to acknowledge your supremacy. A thing he could
never do were you a Barsoomian," he added.
"You are
travelling several laps ahead of me, my friend," I interrupted. "I
glean that your name is Xodar, but whom, pray, are the First Born, and what a
Dator, and why, if you were conquered by a Barsoomian, could you not
acknowledge it?"
"The First Born of
Barsoom," he explained, "are the race of black men of which I am a
Dator, or, as the lesser Barsoomians would say, Prince. My race is the oldest
on the planet. We trace our lineage, unbroken, direct to the Tree of Life which
flourished in the centre of the Valley Dor twenty-three million years ago.
"For countless
ages the fruit of this tree underwent the gradual changes of evolution, passing
by degrees from true plant life to a combination of plant and animal. In the
first stages the fruit of the tree possessed only the power of independent
muscular action, while the stem remained attached to the parent plant; later a
brain developed in the fruit, so that hanging there by their long stems they
thought and moved as individuals.
"Then, with the
development of perceptions came a comparison of them; judgments were reached
and compared, and thus reason and the power to reason were born upon Barsoom.
"Ages passed. Many
forms of life came and went upon the Tree of Life, but still all were attached
to the parent plant by stems of varying lengths. At length the fruit tree
consisted in tiny plant men, such as we now see reproduced in such huge
dimensions in the Valley Dor, but still hanging to the limbs and branches of
the tree by the stems which grew from the tops of their heads.
"The buds from
which the plant men blossomed resembled large nuts about a foot in diameter,
divided by double partition walls into four sections. In one section grew the
plant man, in another a sixteen-legged worm, in the third the progenitor of the
white ape and in the fourth the primaeval black man of Barsoom.
"When the bud
burst the plant man remained dangling at the end of his stem, but the three
other sections fell to the ground, where the efforts of their imprisoned
occupants to escape sent them hopping about in all directions.
"Thus as time went
on, all Barsoom was covered with these imprisoned creatures. For countless ages
they lived their long lives within their hard shells, hopping and skipping
about the broad planet; falling into rivers, lakes, and seas, to be still
further spread about the surface of the new world.
"Countless
billions died before the first black man broke through his prison walls into
the light of day. Prompted by curiosity, he broke open other shells and the
peopling of Barsoom commenced.
"The pure strain
of the blood of this first black man has remained untainted by admixture with
other creatures in the race of which I am a member; but from the sixteen-legged
worm, the first ape and renegade black man has sprung every other form of
animal life upon Barsoom.
"The therns,"
and he smiled maliciously as he spoke, "are but the result of ages of
evolution from the pure white ape of antiquity. They are a lower order still.
There is but one race of true and immortal humans on Barsoom. It is the race of
black men.
"The Tree of Life
is dead, but before it died the plant men learned to detach themselves from it
and roam the face of Barsoom with the other children of the First Parent.
"Now their
bisexuality permits them to reproduce themselves after the manner of true
plants, but otherwise they have progressed but little in all the ages of their
existence. Their actions and movements are largely matters of instinct and not
guided to any great extent by reason, since the brain of a plant man is but a
trifle larger than the end of your smallest finger. They live upon vegetation
and the blood of animals, and their brain is just large enough to direct their
movements in the direction of food, and to translate the food sensations which
are carried to it from their eyes and ears. They have no sense of self-preservation
and so are entirely without fear in the face of danger. That is why they are
such terrible antagonists in combat."
I wondered why the
black man took such pains to discourse thus at length to enemies upon the
genesis of life Barsoomian. It seemed a strangely inopportune moment for a
proud member of a proud race to unbend in casual conversation with a captor.
Especially in view of the fact that the black still lay securely bound upon the
deck.
It was the faintest
straying of his eye beyond me for the barest fraction of a second that
explained his motive for thus dragging out my interest in his truly absorbing
story.
He lay a little forward
of where I stood at the levers, and thus he faced the stern of the vessel as he
addressed me. It was at the end of his description of the plant men that I
caught his eye fixed momentarily upon something behind me.
Nor could I be mistaken
in the swift gleam of triumph that brightened those dark orbs for an instant.
Some time before I had
reduced our speed, for we had left the Valley Dor many miles astern, and I felt
comparatively safe.
I turned an
apprehensive glance behind me, and the sight that I saw froze the new-born hope
of freedom that had been springing up within me.
A great battleship,
forging silent and unlighted through the dark night, loomed close astern.
NOW I REALIZED why the
black pirate had kept me engrossed with his strange tale. For miles he had
sensed the approach of succour, and but for that single tell-tale glance the
battleship would have been directly above us in another moment, and the
boarding party which was doubtless even now swinging in their harness from the
ship's keel, would have swarmed our deck, placing my rising hope of escape in
sudden and total eclipse.
I was too old a hand in
aerial warfare to be at a loss now for the right manoeuvre. Simultaneously I
reversed the engines and dropped the little vessel a sheer hundred feet.
Above my head I could
see the dangling forms of the boarding party as the battleship raced over us.
Then I rose at a sharp angle, throwing my speed lever to its last notch.
Like a bolt from a
crossbow my splendid craft shot its steel prow straight at the whirring
propellers of the giant above us. If I could but touch them the huge bulk would
be disabled for hours and escape once more possible.
At the same instant the
sun shot above the horizon, disclosing a hundred grim, black faces peering over
the stern of the battleship upon us.
At sight of us a shout
of rage went up from a hundred throats. Orders were shouted, but it was too
late to save the giant propellers, and with a crash we rammed them.
Instantly with the
shock of impact I reversed my engine, but my prow was wedged in the hole it had
made in the battleship's stern. Only a second I hung there before tearing away,
but that second was amply long to swarm my deck with black devils.
There was no fight. In
the first place there was no room to fight. We were simply submerged by
numbers. Then as swords menaced me a command from Xodar stayed the hands of his
fellows.
"Secure
them," he said, "but do not injure them."
Several of the pirates
already had released Xodar. He now personally attended to my disarming and saw
that I was properly bound. At least he thought that the binding was secure. It
would have been had I been a Martian, but I had to smile at the puny strands
that confined my wrists. When the time came I could snap them as they had been
cotton string.
The girl they bound
also, and then they fastened us together. In the meantime they had brought our
craft alongside the disabled battleship, and soon we were transported to the
latter's deck.
Fully a thousand black
men manned the great engine of destruction. Her decks were crowded with them as
they pressed forward as far as discipline would permit to get a glimpse of
their captives.
The girl's beauty
elicited many brutal comments and vulgar jests. It was evident that these
self-thought supermen were far inferior to the red men of Barsoom in refinement
and in chivalry.
My close-cropped black
hair and thern complexion were the subjects of much comment. When Xodar told
his fellow-nobles of my fighting ability and strange origin they crowded about
me with numerous questions.
The fact that I wore
the harness and metal of a thern who had been killed by a member of my party
convinced them that I was an enemy of their hereditary foes, and placed me on a
better footing in their estimation.
Without exception the
blacks were handsome men, and well built. The officers were conspicuous through
the wondrous magnificence of their resplendent trappings. Many harnesses were
so encrusted with gold, platinum, silver and precious stones as to entirely
hide the leather beneath.
The harness of the
commanding officer was a solid mass of diamonds. Against the ebony background
of his skin they blazed out with a peculiarly accentuated effulgence. The whole
scene was enchanting. The handsome men; the barbaric splendour of the
accoutrements; the polished skeel wood of the deck; the gloriously grained
sorapus of the cabins, inlaid with priceless jewels and precious metals in
intricate and beautiful design; the burnished gold of hand rails; the shining
metal of the guns.
Phaidor and I were
taken below decks, where, still fast bound, we were thrown into a small
compartment which contained a single port-hole. As our escort left us they
barred the door behind them.
We could hear the men
working on the broken propellers, and from the port-hole we could see that the
vessel was drifting lazily toward the south.
For some time neither
of us spoke. Each was occupied with his own thoughts. For my part I was
wondering as to the fate of Tars Tarkas and the girl, Thuvia.
Even if they succeeded
in eluding pursuit they must eventually fall into the hands of either red men
or green, and as fugitives from the Valley Dor they could look for but little
else than a swift and terrible death.
How I wished that I
might have accompanied them. It seemed to me that I could not fail to impress
upon the intelligent red men of Barsoom the wicked deception that a cruel and
senseless superstition had foisted upon them.
Tardos Mors would
believe me. Of that I was positive. And that he would have the courage of his
convictions my knowledge of his character assured me. Dejah Thoris would
believe me. Not a doubt as to that entered my head. Then there were a thousand
of my red and green warrior friends whom I knew would face eternal damnation
gladly for my sake. Like Tars Tarkas, where I led they would follow.
My only danger lay in
that should I ever escape the black pirates it might be to fall into the hands
of unfriendly red or green men. Then it would mean short shrift for me.
Well, there seemed
little to worry about on that score, for the likelihood of my ever escaping the
blacks was extremely remote.
The girl and I were
linked together by a rope which permitted us to move only about three or four
feet from each other. When we had entered the compartment we had seated ourselves
upon a low bench beneath the porthole. The bench was the only furniture of the
room. It was of sorapus wood. The floor, ceiling and walls were of carborundum
aluminum, a light, impenetrable composition extensively utilized in the
construction of Martian fighting ships.
As I had sat meditating
upon the future my eyes had been riveted upon the port-hole which was just
level with them as I sat. Suddenly I looked toward Phaidor. She was regarding
me with a strange expression I had not before seen upon her face. She was very
beautiful then.
Instantly her white
lids veiled her eyes, and I thought I discovered a delicate flush tinging her
cheek. Evidently she was embarrassed at having been detected in the act of
staring at a lesser creature, I thought.
"Do you find the
study of the lower orders interesting?" I asked, laughing.
She looked up again
with a nervous but relieved little laugh.
"Oh very,"
she said, "especially when they have such excellent profiles."
It was my turn to
flush, but I did not. I felt that she was poking fun at me, and I admired a
brave heart that could look for humour on the road to death, and so I laughed
with her.
"Do you know where
we are going?" she said.
"To solve the
mystery of the eternal hereafter, I imagine," I replied.
"I am going to a
worse fate than that," she said, with a little shudder.
"What do you
mean?"
"I can only
guess," she replied, "since no thern damsel of all the millions that
have been stolen away by black pirates during the ages they have raided our
domains has ever returned to narrate her experiences among them. That they
never take a man prisoner lends strength to the belief that the fate of the
girls they steal is worse than death."
"Is it not a just
retribution?" I could not help but ask.
"What do you
mean?"
"Do not the therns
themselves do likewise with the poor creatures who take the voluntary
pilgrimage down the River of Mystery? Was not Thuvia for fifteen years a
plaything and a slave? Is it less than just that you should suffer as you have
caused others to suffer?"
"You do not
understand," she replied. "We therns are a holy race. It is an honour
to a lesser creature to be a slave among us. Did we not occasionally save a few
of the lower orders that stupidly float down an unknown river to an unknown end
all would become the prey of the plant men and the apes."
"But do you not by
every means encourage the superstition among those of the outside world?"
I argued. "That is the wickedest of your deeds. Can you tell me why you
foster the cruel deception?"
"All life on
Barsoom," she said, "is created solely for the support of the race of
therns. How else could we live did the outer world not furnish our labour and
our food? Think you that a thern would demean himself by labour?"
"It is true then
that you eat human flesh?" I asked in horror.
She looked at me in
pitying commiseration for my ignorance.
"Truly we eat the
flesh of the lower orders. Do not you also?"
"The flesh of
beasts, yes," I replied, "but not the flesh of man."
"As man may eat of
the flesh of beasts, so may gods eat of the flesh of man. The Holy Therns are
the gods of Barsoom."
I was disgusted and I
imagine that I showed it.
"You are an
unbeliever now," she continued gently, "but should we be fortunate enough
to escape the clutches of the black pirates and come again to the court of
Matai Shang I think that we shall find an argument to convince you of the error
of your ways. And -- ," she hesitated, "perhaps we shall find a way
to keep you as -- as -- one of us."
Again her eyes dropped
to the floor, and a faint colour suffused her cheek. I could not understand her
meaning; nor did I for a long time. Dejah Thoris was wont to say that in some
things I was a veritable simpleton, and I guess that she was right.
"I fear that I
would ill requite your father's hospitality," I answered, "since the
first thing that I should do were I a thern would be to set an armed guard at
the mouth of the River Iss to escort the poor deluded voyagers back to the outer
world. Also should I devote my life to the extermination of the hideous plant
men and their horrible companions, the great white apes."
She looked at me really
horror struck.
"No, no," she
cried, "you must not say such terribly sacrilegious things -- you must not
even think them. Should they ever guess that you entertained such frightful
thoughts, should we chance to regain the temples of the therns, they would mete
out a frightful death to you. Not even my -- my -- " Again she flushed,
and started over. "Not even I could save you."
I said no more.
Evidently it was useless. She was even more steeped in superstition than the
Martians of the outer world. They only worshipped a beautiful hope for a life
of love and peace and happiness in the hereafter. The therns worshipped the
hideous plant men and the apes, or at least they reverenced them as the abodes
of the departed spirits of their own dead.
At this point the door
of our prison opened to admit Xodar.
He smiled pleasantly at
me, and when he smiled his expression was kindly -- anything but cruel or
vindictive.
"Since you cannot
escape under any circumstances," he said, "I cannot see the necessity
for keeping you confined below. I will cut your bonds and you may come on deck.
You will witness something very interesting, and as you never shall return to
the outer world it will do no harm to permit you to see it. You will see what
no other than the First Born and their slaves know the existence of -- the
subterranean entrance to the Holy Land, to the real heaven of Barsoom.
"It will be an
excellent lesson for this daughter of the therns," he added, "for she
shall see the Temple of Issus, and Issus, perchance, shall embrace her."
Phaidor's head went
high.
"What blasphemy is
this, dog of a pirate?" she cried. "Issus would wipe out your entire
breed an' you ever came within sight of her temple."
"You have much to
learn, thern," replied Xodar, with an ugly smile, "nor do I envy you
the manner in which you will learn it."
As we came on deck I
saw to my surprise that the vessel was passing over a great field of snow and
ice. As far as the eye could reach in any direction naught else was visible.
There could be but one
solution to the mystery. We were above the south polar ice cap. Only at the
poles of Mars is there ice or snow upon the planet. No sign of life appeared
below us. Evidently we were too far south even for the great fur-bearing
animals which the Martians so delight in hunting.
Xodar was at my side as
I stood looking out over the ship's rail.
"What
course?" I asked him.
"A little west of
south," he replied. "You will see the Otz Valley directly. We shall
skirt it for a few hundred miles."
"The Otz
Valley!" I exclaimed; "but, man, is not there where lie the domains
of the therns from which I but just escaped?"
"Yes,"
answered Xodar. "You crossed this ice field last night in the long chase
that you led us. The Otz Valley lies in a mighty depression at the south pole.
It is sunk thousands of feet below the level of the surrounding country, like a
great round bowl. A hundred miles from its northern boundary rise the Otz
Mountains which circle the inner Valley of Dor, in the exact centre of which
lies the Lost Sea of Korus. On the shore of this sea stands the Golden Temple
of Issus in the Land of the First Born. It is there that we are bound."
As I looked I commenced
to realize why it was that in all the ages only one had escaped from the Valley
Dor. My only wonder was that even the one had been successful. To cross this
frozen, wind-swept waste of bleak ice alone and on foot would be impossible.
"Only by air boat
could the journey be made," I finished aloud.
"It was thus that
one did escape the therns in bygone times; but none has ever escaped the First
Born," said Xodar, with a touch of pride in his voice.
We had now reached the
southernmost extremity of the great ice barrier. It ended abruptly in a sheer
wall thousands of feet high at the base of which stretched a level valley,
broken here and there by low rolling hills and little clumps of forest, and with
tiny rivers formed by the melting of the ice barrier at its base.
Once we passed far
above what seemed to be a deep canyon-like rift stretching from the ice wall on
the north across the valley as far as the eye could reach. "That is the
bed of the River Iss," said Xodar. "It runs far beneath the ice
field, and below the level of the Valley Otz, but its canyon is open
here."
Presently I descried
what I took to be a village, and pointing it out to Xodar asked him what it
might be.
"It is a village
of lost souls," he answered, laughing. "This strip between the ice
barrier and the mountains is considered neutral ground. Some turn off from
their voluntary pilgrimage down the Iss, and, scaling the awful walls of its
canyon below us, stop in the valley. Also a slave now and then escapes from the
therns and makes his way hither.
"They do not
attempt to recapture such, since there is no escape from this outer valley, and
as a matter of fact they fear the patrolling cruisers of the First Born too
much to venture from their own domains.
"The poor
creatures of this outer valley are not molested by us since they have nothing
that we desire, nor are they numerically strong enough to give us an
interesting fight -- so we too leave them alone.
"There are several
villages of them, but they have increased in numbers but little in many years
since they are always warring among themselves."
Now we swung a little
north of west, leaving the valley of lost souls, and shortly I discerned over
our starboard bow what appeared to be a black mountain rising from the desolate
waste of ice. It was not high and seemed to have a flat top.
Xodar had left us to
attend to some duty on the vessel, and Phaidor and I stood alone beside the
rail. The girl had not once spoken since we had been brought to the deck.
"Is what he has
been telling me true?" I asked her.
"In part,
yes," she answered. "That about the outer valley is true, but what he
says of the location of the Temple of Issus in the centre of his country is
false. If it is not false -- " she hesitated. "Oh it cannot be true,
it cannot be true. For if it were true then for countless ages have my people
gone to torture and ignominious death at the hands of their cruel enemies,
instead of to the beautiful Life Eternal that we have been taught to believe
Issus holds for us."
"As the lesser
Barsoomians of the outer world have been lured by you to the terrible Valley
Dor, so may it be that the therns themselves have been lured by the First Born
to an equally horrid fate," I suggested. "It would be a stern and
awful retribution, Phaidor; but a just one."
"I cannot believe
it," she said.
"We shall
see," I answered, and then we fell silent again for we were rapidly
approaching the black mountains, which in some indefinable way seemed linked
with the answer to our problem.
As we neared the dark,
truncated cone the vessel's speed was diminished until we barely moved. Then we
topped the crest of the mountain and below us I saw yawning the mouth of a huge
circular well, the bottom of which was lost in inky blackness.
The diameter of this
enormous pit was fully a thousand feet. The walls were smooth and appeared to
be composed of a black, basaltic rock.
For a moment the vessel
hovered motionless directly above the centre of the gaping void, then slowly
she began to settle into the black chasm. Lower and lower she sank until as
darkness enveloped us her lights were thrown on and in the dim halo of her own
radiance the monster battleship dropped on and on down into what seemed to me
must be the very bowels of Barsoom.
For quite half an hour
we descended and then the shaft terminated abruptly in the dome of a mighty
subterranean world. Below us rose and fell the billows of a buried sea. A
phosphorescent radiance illuminated the scene. Thousands of ships dotted the
bosom of the ocean. Little islands rose here and there to support the strange
and colourless vegetation of this strange world.
Slowly and with
majestic grace the battleship dropped until she rested on the water. Her great
propellers had been drawn and housed during our descent of the shaft and in
their place had been run out the smaller but more powerful water propellers. As
these commenced to revolve the ship took up its journey once more, riding the
new element as buoyantly and as safely as she had the air.
Phaidor and I were
dumbfounded. Neither had either heard or dreamed that such a world existed
beneath the surface of Barsoom.
Nearly all the vessels
we saw were war craft. There were a few lighters and barges, but none of the
great merchant-men such as ply the upper air between the cities of the outer
world.
"Here is the
harbour of the navy of the First Born," said a voice behind us, and
turning we saw Xodar watching us with an amused smile on his lips.
"This sea,"
he continued, "is larger than Korus. It receives the waters of the lesser
sea above it. To keep it from filling above a certain level we have four great
pumping stations that force the oversupply back into the reservoirs far north
from which the red men draw the water which irrigates their farm lands."
A new light burst on me
with this explanation. The red men had always considered it a miracle that
caused great columns of water to spurt from the solid rock of their reservoir
sides to increase the supply of the precious liquid which is so scarce in the
outer world of Mars.
Never had their learned
men been able to fathom the secret of the source of this enormous volume of
water. As ages passed they had simply come to accept it as a matter of course and
ceased to question its origin.
We passed several
islands on which were strangely shaped circular buildings, apparently roofless,
and pierced midway between the ground and their tops with small, heavily barred
windows. They bore the earmarks of prisons, which were further accentuated by
the armed guards who squatted on low benches without, or patrolled the short
beach lines.
Few of these islets
contained over an acre of ground, but presently we sighted a much larger one
directly ahead. This proved to be our destination, and the great ship was soon
made fast against the steep shore.
Xodar signalled us to
follow him and with a half-dozen officers and men we left the battleship and
approached a large oval structure a couple of hundred yards from the shore.
"You shall soon
see Issus," said Xodar to Phaidor. "The few prisoners we take are
presented to her. Occasionally she selects slaves from among them to replenish
the ranks of her handmaidens. None serves Issus above a single year," and
there was a grim smile on the black's lips that lent a cruel and sinister
meaning to his simple statement.
Phaidor, though loath
to believe that Issus was allied to such as these, had commenced to entertain
doubts and fears. She clung very closely to me, no longer the proud daughter of
the Master of Life and Death upon Barsoom, but a young and frightened girl in
the power of relentless enemies.
The building which we
now entered was entirely roofless. In its centre was a long tank of water, set
below the level of the floor like the swimming pool of a natatorium. Near one
side of the pool floated an odd-looking black object. Whether it were some
strange monster of these buried waters, or a queer raft, I could not at once
perceive.
We were soon to know,
however, for as we reached the edge of the pool directly above the thing, Xodar
cried out a few words in a strange tongue. Immediately a hatch cover was raised
from the surface of the object, and a black seaman sprang from the bowels of
the strange craft.
Xodar addressed the
seaman.
"Transmit to your
officer," he said, "the commands of Dator Xodar. Say to him that
Dator Xodar, with officers and men, escorting two prisoners, would be
transported to the gardens of Issus beside the Golden Temple."
"Blessed be the
shell of thy first ancestor, most noble Dator," replied the man. "It
shall be done even as thou sayest," and raising both hands, palms
backward, above his head after the manner of salute which is common to all
races of Barsoom, he disappeared once more into the entrails of his ship.
A moment later an
officer resplendent in the gorgeous trappings of his rank appeared on deck and
welcomed Xodar to the vessel, and in the latter's wake we filed aboard and
below.
The cabin in which we
found ourselves extended entirely across the ship, having port-holes on either
side below the water line. No sooner were all below than a number of commands
were given, in accordance with which the hatch was closed and secured, and the
vessel commenced to vibrate to the rhythmic purr of its machinery.
"Where can we be
going in such a tiny pool of water?" asked Phaidor.
"Not up," I
replied, "for I noticed particularly that while the building is roofless
it is covered with a strong metal grating."
"Then where?"
she asked again.
"From the
appearance of the craft I judge we are going down," I replied.
Phaidor shuddered. For
such long ages have the waters of Barsoom's seas been a thing of tradition only
that even this daughter of the therns, born as she had been within sight of
Mars' only remaining sea, had the same terror of deep water as is a common
attribute of all Martians.
Presently the sensation
of sinking became very apparent. We were going down swiftly. Now we could hear
the water rushing past the port-holes, and in the dim light that filtered
through them to the water beyond the swirling eddies were plainly visible.
Phaidor grasped my arm.
"Save me!"
she whispered. "Save me and your every wish shall be granted. Anything
within the power of the Holy Therns to give will be yours. Phaidor -- "
she stumbled a little here, and then in a very low voice, "Phaidor already
is yours."
I felt very sorry for
the poor child, and placed my hand over hers where it rested on my arm. I
presume my motive was misunderstood, for with a swift glance about the
apartment to assure herself that we were alone, she threw both her arms about
my neck and dragged my face down to hers.
THE CONFESSION of love
which the girl's fright had wrung from her touched me deeply; but it humiliated
me as well, since I felt that in some thoughtless word or act I had given her
reason to believe that I reciprocated her affection.
Never have I been much
of a ladies' man, being more concerned with fighting and kindred arts which
have ever seemed to me more befitting a man than mooning over a scented glove
four sizes too small for him, or kissing a dead flower that has begun to smell
like a cabbage. So I was quite at a loss as to what to do or say. A thousand
times rather face the wild hordes of the dead sea bottoms than meet the eyes of
this beautiful young girl and tell her the thing that I must tell her.
But there was nothing
else to be done, and so I did it. Very clumsily too, I fear.
Gently I unclasped her
hands from about my neck, and still holding them in mine I told her the story
of my love for Dejah Thoris. That of all the women of two worlds that I had
known and admired during my long life she alone had I loved.
The tale did not seem
to please her. Like a tigress she sprang, panting, to her feet. Her beautiful
face was distorted in an expression of horrible malevolence. Her eyes fairly
blazed into mine.
"Dog," she
hissed. "Dog of a blasphemer! Think you that Phaidor, daughter of Matai
Shang, supplicates? She commands. What to her is your puny outer world passion
for the vile creature you chose in your other life?
"Phaidor has
glorified you with her love, and you have spurned her. Ten thousand unthinkably
atrocious deaths could not atone for the affront that you have put upon me. The
thing that you call Dejah Thoris shall die the most horrible of them all. You have
sealed the warrant for her doom.
"And you! You
shall be the meanest slave in the service of the goddess you have attempted to
humiliate. Tortures and ignominies shall be heaped upon you until you grovel at
my feet asking the boon of death.
"In my gracious
generosity I shall at length grant your prayer, and from the high balcony of
the Golden Cliffs I shall watch the great white apes tear you asunder."
She had it all fixed
up. The whole lovely programme from start to finish. It amazed me to think that
one so divinely beautiful could at the same time be so fiendishly vindictive.
It occurred to me, however, that she had overlooked one little factor in her revenge,
and so, without any intent to add to her discomfiture, but rather to permit her
to rearrange her plans along more practical lines, I pointed to the nearest
port-hole.
Evidently she had
entirely forgotten her surroundings and her present circumstances, for a single
glance at the dark, swirling waters without sent her crumpled upon a low bench,
where with her face buried in her arms she sobbed more like a very unhappy
little girl than a proud and all-powerful goddess.
Down, down we continued
to sink until the heavy glass of the port-holes became noticeably warm from the
heat of the water without. Evidently we were very far beneath the surface crust
of Mars.
Presently our downward
motion ceased, and I could hear the propellers swirling through the water at
our stern and forcing us ahead at high speed. It was very dark down there, but
the light from our port-holes, and the reflection from what must have been a
powerful searchlight on the submarine's nose showed that we were forging
through a narrow passage, rock-lined, and tube-like.
After a few minutes the
propellers ceased their whirring. We came to a full stop, and then commenced to
rise swiftly toward the surface. Soon the light from without increased and we
came to a stop.
Xodar entered the cabin
with his men.
"Come," he
said, and we followed him through the hatchway which had been opened by one of
the seamen.
We found ourselves in a
small subterranean vault, in the centre of which was the pool in which lay our
submarine, floating as we had first seen her with only her black back showing.
Around the edge of the
pool was a level platform, and then the walls of the cave rose perpendicularly
for a few feet to arch toward the centre of the low roof. The walls about the
ledge were pierced with a number of entrances to dimly lighted passageways.
Toward one of these our
captors led us, and after a short walk halted before a steel cage which lay at
the bottom of a shaft rising above us as far as one could see.
The cage proved to be
one of the common types of elevator cars that I had seen in other parts of
Barsoom. They are operated by means of enormous magnets which are suspended at
the top of the shaft. By an electrical device the volume of magnetism generated
is regulated and the speed of the car varied.
In long stretches they
move at a sickening speed, especially on the upward trip, since the small force
of gravity inherent to Mars results in very little opposition to the powerful
force above.
Scarcely had the door
of the car closed behind us than we were slowing up to stop at the landing
above, so rapid was our ascent of the long shaft.
When we emerged from
the little building which houses the upper terminus of the elevator, we found
ourselves in the midst of a veritable fairyland of beauty. The combined
languages of Earth men hold no words to convey to the mind the gorgeous
beauties of the scene.
One may speak of
scarlet sward and ivory-stemmed trees decked with brilliant purple blooms; of
winding walks paved with crushed rubies, with emerald, with turquoise, even
with diamonds themselves; of a magnificent temple of burnished gold,
hand-wrought with marvellous designs; but where are the words to describe the
glorious colours that are unknown to earthly eyes? where the mind or the imagination
that can grasp the gorgeous scintillations of unheard-of rays as they emanate
from the thousand nameless jewels of Barsoom?
Even my eyes, for long
years accustomed to the barbaric splendours of a Martian Jeddak's court, were
amazed at the glory of the scene.
Phaidor's eyes were
wide in amazement.
"The Temple of
Issus," she whispered, half to herself.
Xodar watched us with
his grim smile, partly of amusement and partly malicious gloating.
The gardens swarmed
with brilliantly trapped black men and women. Among them moved red and white
females serving their every want. The places of the outer world and the temples
of the therns had been robbed of their princesses and goddesses that the blacks
might have their slaves.
Through this scene we moved
toward the temple. At the main entrance we were halted by a cordon of armed
guards. Xodar spoke a few words to an officer who came forward to question us.
Together they entered the temple, where they remained for some time.
When they returned it
was to announce that Issus desired to look upon the daughter of Matai Shang,
and the strange creature from another world who had been a Prince of Helium.
Slowly we moved through
endless corridors of unthinkable beauty; through magnificent apartments, and noble
halls. At length we were halted in a spacious chamber in the centre of the
temple. One of the officers who had accompanied us advanced to a large door in
the further end of the chamber. Here he must have made some sort of signal for
immediately the door opened and another richly trapped courtier emerged.
We were then led up to
the door, where we were directed to get down on our hands and knees with our
backs toward the room we were to enter. The doors were swung open and after
being cautioned not to turn our heads under penalty of instant death we were
commanded to back into the presence of Issus.
Never have I been in so
humiliating a position in my life, and only my love for Dejah Thoris and the
hope which still clung to me that I might again see her kept me from rising to
face the goddess of the First Born and go down to my death like a gentleman,
facing my foes and with their blood mingling with mine.
After we had crawled in
this disgusting fashion for a matter of a couple of hundred feet we were halted
by our escort.
"Let them
rise," said a voice behind us; a thin, wavering voice, yet one that had
evidently been accustomed to command for many years.
"Rise," said
our escort, "but do not face toward Issus."
"The woman pleases
me," said the thin, wavering voice again after a few moments of silence.
"She shall serve me the allotted time. The man you may return to the Isle
of Shador which lies against the northern shore of the Sea of Omean. Let the
woman turn and look upon Issus, knowing that those of the lower orders who gaze
upon the holy vision of her radiant face survive the blinding glory but a
single year."
I watched Phaidor from
the corner of my eye. She paled to a ghastly hue. Slowly, very slowly she
turned, as though drawn by some invisible yet irresistible force. She was
standing quite close to me, so close that her bare arm touched mine as she
finally faced Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
I could not see the
girl's face as her eyes rested for the first time on the Supreme Deity of Mars,
but felt the shudder that ran through her in the trembling flesh of the arm
that touched mine.
"It must be
dazzling loveliness indeed," thought I, "to cause such emotion in the
breast of so radiant a beauty as Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang."
"Let the woman
remain. Remove the man. Go." Thus spoke Issus, and the heavy hand of the
officer fell upon my shoulder. In accordance with his instructions I dropped to
my hands and knees once more and crawled from the Presence. It had been my
first audience with deity, but I am free to confess that I was not greatly
impressed -- other than with the ridiculous figure I cut scrambling about on my
marrow bones.
Once without the
chamber the doors closed behind us and I was bid to rise. Xodar joined me and
together we slowly retraced our steps toward the gardens.
"You spared my
life when you easily might have taken it," he said after we had proceeded
some little way in silence, "and I would aid you if I might. I can help to
make your life here more bearable, but your fate is inevitable. You may never
hope to return to the outer world."
"What will be my
fate?" I asked.
"That will depend
largely upon Issus. So long as she does not send for you and reveal her face to
you, you may live on for years in as mild a form of bondage as I can arrange
for you."
"Why should she
send for me?" I asked.
"The men of the
lower orders she often uses for various purposes of amusement. Such a fighter
as you, for example, would render fine sport in the monthly rites of the
temple. There are men pitted against men, and against beasts for the
edification of Issus and the replenishment of her larder."
"She eats human
flesh?" I asked. Not in horror, however, for since my recently acquired
knowledge of the Holy Therns I was prepared for anything in this still less
accessible heaven, where all was evidently dictated by a single omnipotence;
where ages of narrow fanaticism and self-worship had eradicated all the broader
humanitarian instincts that the race might once have possessed.
They were a people
drunk with power and success, looking upon the other inhabitants of Mars as we
look upon the beasts of the field and the forest. Why then should they not eat
of the flesh of the lower orders whose lives and characters they no more
understood than do we the inmost thoughts and sensibilities of the cattle we
slaughter for our earthly tables.
"She eats only the
flesh of the best bred of the Holy Therns and the red Barsoomians. The flesh of
the others goes to our boards. The animals are eaten by the slaves. She also
eats other dainties."
I did not understand
then that there lay any special significance in his reference to other
dainties. I thought the limit of ghoulishness already had been reached in the
recitation of Issus' menu. I still had much to learn as to the depths of
cruelty and bestiality to which omnipotence may drag its possessor.
We had about reached
the last of the many chambers and corridors which led to the gardens when an
officer overtook us.
"Issus would look
again upon this man," he said. "The girl has told her that he is of
wondrous beauty and of such prowess that alone he slew seven of the First Born,
and with his bare hands took Xodar captive, binding him with his own
harness."
Xodar looked
uncomfortable. Evidently he did not relish the thought that Issus had learned
of his inglorious defeat.
Without a word he
turned and we followed the officer once again to the closed doors before the
audience chamber of Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
Here the ceremony of
entrance was repeated. Again Issus bid me rise. For several minutes all was
silent as the tomb. The eyes of deity were appraising me.
Presently the thin
wavering voice broke the stillness, repeating in a singsong drone the words
which for countless ages had sealed the doom of numberless victims.
"Let the man turn
and look upon Issus, knowing that those of the lower orders who gaze upon the
holy vision of her radiant face survive the blinding glory but a single
year."
I turned as I had been
bid, expecting such a treat as only the revealment of divine glory to mortal
eyes might produce. What I saw was a solid phalanx of armed men between myself
and a dais supporting a great bench of carved sorapus wood. On this bench, or
throne, squatted a female black. She was evidently very old. Not a hair
remained upon her wrinkled skull. With the exception of two yellow fangs she
was entirely toothless. On either side of her thin, hawk-like nose her eyes
burned from the depths of horribly sunken sockets. The skin of her face was
seamed and creased with a million deepcut furrows. Her body was as wrinkled as
her face, and as repulsive.
Emaciated arms and legs
attached to a torso which seemed to be mostly distorted abdomen completed the
"holy vision of her radiant beauty."
Surrounding her were a
number of female slaves, among them Phaidor, white and trembling.
"This is the man
who slew seven of the First Born and, bare-handed, bound Dator Xodar with his
own harness?" asked Issus.
"Most glorious
vision of divine loveliness, it is," replied the officer who stood at my
side.
"Produce Dator
Xodar," she commanded.
Xodar was brought from
the adjoining room.
Issus glared at him, a
baleful light in her hideous eyes.
"And such as you
are a Dator of the First Born?" she squealed. "For the disgrace you
have brought upon the Immortal Race you shall be degraded to a rank below the
lowest. No longer be you a Dator, but for evermore a slave of slaves, to fetch
and carry for the lower orders that serve in the gardens of Issus. Remove his
harness. Cowards and slaves wear no trappings."
Xodar stood stiffly
erect. Not a muscle twitched, nor a tremor shook his giant frame as a soldier
of the guard roughly stripped his gorgeous trappings from him.
"Begone,"
screamed the infuriated little old woman. "Begone, but instead of the
light of the gardens of Issus let you serve as a slave of this slave who
conquered you in the prison on the Isle of Shador in the Sea of Omean. Take him
away out of the sight of my divine eyes."
Slowly and with high
held head the proud Xodar turned and stalked from the chamber. Issus rose and
turned to leave the room by another exit.
Turning to me, she
said: "You shall be returned to Shador for the present. Later Issus will
see the manner of your fighting. Go." Then she disappeared, followed by
her retinue. Only Phaidor lagged behind, and as I started to follow my guard
toward the gardens, the girl came running after me.
"Oh, do not leave
me in this terrible place," she begged. "Forgive the things I said to
you, my Prince. I did not mean them. Only take me away with you. Let me share
your imprisonment on Shador." Her words were an almost incoherent volley
of thoughts, so rapidly she spoke. "You did not understand the honour that
I did you. Among the therns there is no marriage or giving in marriage, as
among the lower orders of the outer world. We might have lived together for
ever in love and happiness. We have both looked upon Issus and in a year we die.
Let us live that year at least together in what measure of joy remains for the
doomed."
"If it was
difficult for me to understand you, Phaidor," I replied, "can you not
understand that possibly it is equally difficult for you to understand the
motives, the customs and the social laws that guide me? I do not wish to hurt
you, nor to seem to undervalue the honour which you have done me, but the thing
you desire may not be. Regardless of the foolish belief of the peoples of the
outer world, or of Holy Thern, or ebon First Born, I am not dead. While I live
my heart beats for but one woman -- the incomparable Dejah Thoris, Princess of
Helium. When death overtakes me my heart shall have ceased to beat; but what
comes after that I know not. And in that I am as wise as Matai Shang, Master of
Life and Death upon Barsoom; or Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal."
Phaidor stood looking
at me intently for a moment. No anger showed in her eyes this time, only a
pathetic expression of hopeless sorrow.
"I do not
understand," she said, and turning walked slowly in the direction of the
door through which Issus and her retinue had passed. A moment later she had
passed from my sight.
IN THE OUTER GARDENS to
which the guard now escorted me, I found Xodar surrounded by a crowd of noble
blacks. They were reviling and cursing him. The men slapped his face. The woman
spat upon him.
When I appeared they
turned their attentions toward me.
"Ah," cried
one, "so this is the creature who overcame the great Xodar bare-handed.
Let us see how it was done."
"Let him bind
Thurid," suggested a beautiful woman, laughing. "Thurid is a noble
Dator. Let Thurid show the dog what it means to face a real man."
"Yes, Thurid!
Thurid!" cried a dozen voices.
"Here he is
now," exclaimed another, and turning in the direction indicated I saw a
huge black weighed down with resplendent ornaments and arms advancing with
noble and gallant bearing toward us.
"What now?"
he cried. "What would you of Thurid?"
Quickly a dozen voices
explained.
Thurid turned toward
Xodar, his eyes narrowing to two nasty slits.
"Calot!" he
hissed. "Ever did I think you carried the heart of a sorak in your putrid
breast. Often have you bested me in the secret councils of Issus, but now in
the field of war where men are truly gauged your scabby heart hath revealed its
sores to all the world. Calot, I spurn you with my foot," and with the
words he turned to kick Xodar.
My blood was up. For
minutes it had been boiling at the cowardly treatment they had been according
this once powerful comrade because he had fallen from the favour of Issus. I
had no love for Xodar, but I cannot stand the sight of cowardly injustice and
persecution without seeing red as through a haze of bloody mist, and doing things
on the impulse of the moment that I presume I never should do after mature
deliberation.
I was standing close
beside Xodar as Thurid swung his foot for the cowardly kick. The degraded Dator
stood erect and motionless as a carven image. He was prepared to take whatever
his former comrades had to offer in the way of insults and reproaches, and take
them in manly silence and stoicism.
But as Thurid's foot
swung so did mine, and I caught him a painful blow upon the shin bone that
saved Xodar from this added ignominy.
For a moment there was
tense silence, then Thurid, with a roar of rage sprang for my throat; just as
Xodar had upon the deck of the cruiser. The results were identical. I ducked
beneath his outstretched arms, and as he lunged past me planted a terrific
right on the side of his jaw.
The big fellow spun
around like a top, his knees gave beneath him and he crumpled to the ground at
my feet.
The blacks gazed in
astonishment, first at the still form of the proud Dator lying there in the
ruby dust of the pathway, then at me as though they could not believe that such
a thing could be.
"You asked me to
bind Thurid," I cried; "behold!" And then I stooped beside the
prostrate form, tore the harness from it, and bound the fellow's arms and legs
securely.
"As you have done
to Xodar, now do you likewise to Thurid. Take him before Issus, bound in his
own harness, that she may see with her own eyes that there be one among you now
who is greater than the First Born."
"Who are
you?" whispered the woman who had first suggested that I attempt to bind
Thurid.
"I am a citizen of
two worlds; Captain John Carter of Virginia, Prince of the House of Tardos
Mors, Jeddak of Helium. Take this man to your goddess, as I have said, and tell
her, too, that as I have done to Xodar and Thurid, so also can I do to the
mightiest of her Dators. With naked hands, with long-sword or with short-sword,
I challenge the flower of her fighting-men to combat."
"Come," said
the officer who was guarding me back to Shador; "my orders are imperative;
there is to be no delay. Xodar, come you also."
There was little of
disrespect in the tone that the man used in addressing either Xodar or myself.
It was evident that he felt less contempt for the former Dator since he had
witnessed the ease with which I disposed of the powerful Thurid.
That his respect for me
was greater than it should have been for a slave was quite apparent from the
fact that during the balance of the return journey he walked or stood always
behind me, a drawn short-sword in his hand.
The return to the Sea
of Omean was uneventful. We dropped down the awful shaft in the same car that
had brought us to the surface. There we entered the submarine, taking the long
dive to the tunnel far beneath the upper world. Then through the tunnel and up
again to the pool from which we had had our first introduction to the wonderful
passageway from Omean to the Temple of Issus.
From the island of the
submarine we were transported on a small cruiser to the distant Isle of Shador.
Here we found a small stone prison and a guard of half a dozen blacks. There
was no ceremony wasted in completing our incarceration. One of the blacks
opened the door of the prison with a huge key, we walked in, the door closed
behind us, the lock grated, and with the sound there swept over me again that
terrible feeling of hopelessness that I had felt in the Chamber of Mystery in
the Golden Cliffs beneath the gardens of the Holy Therns.
Then Tars Tarkas had
been with me, but now I was utterly alone in so far as friendly companionship
was concerned. I fell to wondering about the fate of the great Thark, and of
his beautiful companion, the girl, Thuvia. Even should they by some miracle
have escaped and been received and spared by a friendly nation, what hope had I
of the succour which I knew they would gladly extend if it lay in their power.
They could not guess my
whereabouts or my fate, for none on all Barsoom even dream of such a place as
this. Nor would it have advantaged me any had they known the exact location of
my prison, for who could hope to penetrate to this buried sea in the face of
the mighty navy of the First Born? No: my case was hopeless.
Well, I would make the
best of it, and, rising, I swept aside the brooding despair that had been
endeavouring to claim me. With the idea of exploring my prison, I started to
look around.
Xodar sat, with bowed
head, upon a low stone bench near the centre of the room in which we were. He
had not spoken since Issus had degraded him.
The building was
roofless, the walls rising to a height of about thirty feet. Half-way up were a
couple of small, heavily barred windows. The prison was divided into several
rooms by partitions twenty feet high. There was no one in the room which we
occupied, but two doors which led to other rooms were opened. I entered one of
these rooms, but found it vacant. Thus I continued through several of the
chambers until in the last one I found a young red Martian boy sleeping upon
the stone bench which constituted the only furniture of any of the prison
cells.
Evidently he was the
only other prisoner. As he slept I leaned over and looked at him. There was
something strangely familiar about his face, and yet I could not place him.
His features were very
regular and, like the proportions of his graceful limbs and body, beautiful in
the extreme. He was very light in colour for a red man, but in other respects
he seemed a typical specimen of this handsome race.
I did not awaken him,
for sleep in prison is such a priceless boon that I have seen men transformed
into raging brutes when robbed by one of their fellow-prisoners of a few
precious moments of it.
Returning to my own
cell, I found Xodar still sitting in the same position in which I had left him.
"Man," I
cried, "it will profit you nothing to mope thus. It were no disgrace to be
bested by John Carter. You have seen that in the ease with which I accounted
for Thurid. You knew it before when on the cruiser's deck you saw me slay three
of your comrades."
"I would that you
had dispatched me at the same time," he said.
"Come, come!"
I cried. "There is hope yet. Neither of us is dead. We are great fighters.
Why not win to freedom?"
He looked at me in
amazement.
"You know not of
what you speak," he replied. "Issus is omnipotent. Issus is
omniscient. She hears now the words you speak. She knows the thoughts you
think. It is sacrilege even to dream of breaking her commands."
"Rot, Xodar,"
I ejaculated impatiently.
He sprang to his feet
in horror.
"The curse of
Issus will fall upon you," he cried. "In another instant you will be
smitten down, writhing to your death in horrible agony."
"Do you believe
that, Xodar?" I asked.
"Of course; who
would dare doubt?"
"I doubt; yes, and
further, I deny," I said. "Why, Xodar, you tell me that she even
knows my thoughts. The red men have all had that power for ages. And another
wonderful power. They can shut their minds so that none may read their
thoughts. I learned the first secret years ago; the other I never had to learn,
since upon all Barsoom is none who can read what passes in the secret chambers
of my brain.
"Your goddess
cannot read my thoughts; nor can she read yours when you are out of sight,
unless you will it. Had she been able to read mine, I am afraid that her pride
would have suffered a rather severe shock when I turned at her command to 'gaze
upon the holy vision of her radiant face.'"
"What do you
mean?" he whispered in an affrighted voice, so low that I could scarcely
hear him.
"I mean that I
thought her the most repulsive and vilely hideous creature my eyes ever had
rested upon."
For a moment he eyed me
in horror-stricken amazement, and then with a cry of "Blasphemer" he
sprang upon me.
I did not wish to
strike him again, nor was it necessary, since he was unarmed and therefore
quite harmless to me.
As he came I grasped
his left wrist with my left hand, and, swinging my right arm about his left
shoulder, caught him beneath the chin with my elbow and bore him backward across
my thigh.
There he hung helpless
for a moment, glaring up at me in impotent rage.
"Xodar," I
said, "let us be friends. For a year, possibly, we may be forced to live
together in the narrow confines of this tiny room. I am sorry to have offended
you, but I could not dream that one who had suffered from the cruel injustice
of Issus still could believe her divine.
"I will say a few
more words, Xodar, with no intent to wound your feelings further, but rather
that you may give thought to the fact that while we live we are still more the
arbiters of our own fate than is any god.
"Issus, you see,
has not struck me dead, nor is she rescuing her faithful Xodar from the
clutches of the unbeliever who defamed her fair beauty. No, Xodar, your Issus
is a mortal old woman. Once out of her clutches and she cannot harm you.
"With your
knowledge of this strange land, and my knowledge of the outer world, two such
fighting-men as you and I should be able to win our way to freedom. Even though
we died in the attempt, would not our memories be fairer than as though we
remained in servile fear to be butchered by a cruel and unjust tyrant -- call
her goddess or mortal, as you will."
As I finished I raised
Xodar to his feet and released him. He did not renew the attack upon me, nor
did he speak. Instead, he walked toward the bench, and, sinking down upon it,
remained lost in deep thought for hours.
A long time afterward I
heard a soft sound at the doorway leading to one of the other apartments, and,
looking up, beheld the red Martian youth gazing intently at us.
"Kaor," I
cried, after the red Martian manner of greeting.
"Kaor," he
replied. "What do you here?"
"I await my death,
I presume," I replied with a wry smile.
He too smiled, a brave
and winning smile.
"I also," he
said. "Mine will come soon. I looked upon the radiant beauty of Issus
nearly a year since. It has always been a source of keen wonder to me that I
did not drop dead at the first sight of that hideous countenance. And her
belly! By my first ancestor, but never was there so grotesque a figure in all
the universe. That they should call such a one Goddess of Life Eternal, Goddess
of Death, Mother of the Nearer Moon, and fifty other equally impossible titles,
is quite beyond me."
"How came you here?"
I asked.
"It is very
simple. I was flying a one-man air scout far to the south when the brilliant
idea occurred to me that I should like to search for the Lost Sea of Korus
which tradition places near to the south pole. I must have inherited from my father
a wild lust for adventure, as well as a hollow where my bump of reverence
should be.
"I had reached the
area of eternal ice when my port propeller jammed, and I dropped to the ground
to make repairs. Before I knew it the air was black with fliers, and a hundred
of these First Born devils were leaping to the ground all about me.
"With drawn swords
they made for me, but before I went down beneath them they had tasted of the
steel of my father's sword, and I had given such an account of myself as I know
would have pleased my sire had he lived to witness it."
"Your father is
dead?" I asked.
"He died before
the shell broke to let me step out into a world that has been very good to me.
But for the sorrow that I had never the honour to know my father, I have been
very happy. My only sorrow now is that my mother must mourn me as she has for
ten long years mourned my father."
"Who was your
father?" I asked.
He was about to reply
when the outer door of our prison opened and a burly guard entered and ordered
him to his own quarters for the night, locking the door after him as he passed
through into the further chamber.
"It is Issus' wish
that you two be confined in the same room," said the guard when he had
returned to our cell. "This cowardly slave of a slave is to serve you
well," he said to me, indicating Xodar with a wave of his hand. "If
he does not, you are to beat him into submission. It is Issus' wish that you
heap upon him every indignity and degradation of which you can conceive."
With these words he
left us.
Xodar still sat with
his face buried in his hands. I walked to his side and placed my hand upon his
shoulder.
"Xodar," I
said, "you have heard the commands of Issus, but you need not fear that I
shall attempt to put them into execution. You are a brave man, Xodar. It is
your own affair if you wish to be persecuted and humiliated; but were I you I
should assert my manhood and defy my enemies."
"I have been
thinking very hard, John Carter," he said, "of all the new ideas you
gave me a few hours since. Little by little I have been piecing together the
things that you said which sounded blasphemous to me then with the things that
I have seen in my past life and dared not even think about for fear of bringing
down upon me the wrath of Issus.
"I believe now
that she is a fraud; no more divine than you or I. More I am willing to concede
-- that the First Born are no holier than the Holy Therns, nor the Holy Therns
more holy than the red men.
"The whole fabric
of our religion is based on superstitious belief in lies that have been foisted
upon us for ages by those directly above us, to whose personal profit and
aggrandizement it was to have us continue to believe as they wished us to
believe.
"I am ready to
cast off the ties that have bound me. I am ready to defy Issus herself; but
what will it avail us? Be the First Born gods or mortals, they are a powerful
race, and we are as fast in their clutches as though we were already dead.
There is no escape."
"I have escaped
from bad plights in the past, my friend," I replied; "nor while life
is in me shall I despair of escaping from the Isle of Shador and the Sea of
Omean."
"But we cannot
escape even from the four walls of our prison," urged Xodar. "Test
this flint-like surface," he cried, smiting the solid rock that confined
us. "And look upon this polished surface; none could cling to it to reach
the top."
I smiled.
"That is the least
of our troubles, Xodar," I replied. "I will guarantee to scale the
wall and take you with me, if you will help with your knowledge of the customs
here to appoint the best time for the attempt, and guide me to the shaft that
lets from the dome of this abysmal sea to the light of God's pure air
above."
"Night time is the
best and offers the only slender chance we have, for then men sleep, and only a
dozing watch nods in the tops of the battleships. No watch is kept upon the
cruisers and smaller craft. The watchers upon the larger vessels see to all
about them. It is night now."
"But," I
exclaimed, "it is not dark! How can it be night, then?"
He smiled.
"You forget,"
he said, "that we are far below ground. The light of the sun never
penetrates here. There are no moons and no stars reflected in the bosom of
Omean. The phosphorescent light you now see pervading this great subterranean
vault emanates from the rocks that form its dome; it is always thus upon Omean,
just as the billows are always as you see them -- rolling, ever rolling over a
windless sea.
"At the appointed
hour of night upon the world above, the men whose duties hold them here sleep,
but the light is ever the same."
"It will make
escape more difficult," I said, and then I shrugged my shoulders; for what,
pray, is the pleasure of doing an easy thing?
"Let us sleep on
it to-night," said Xodar. "A plan may come with our awakening."
So we threw ourselves
upon the hard stone floor of our prison and slept the sleep of tired men.
EARLY THE NEXT MORNING
Xodar and I commenced work upon our plans for escape. First I had him sketch
upon the stone floor of our cell as accurate a map of the south polar regions
as was possible with the crude instruments at our disposal -- a buckle from my
harness, and the sharp edge of the wondrous gem I had taken from Sator Throg.
From this I computed
the general direction of Helium and the distance at which it lay from the
opening which led to Omean.
Then I had him draw a
map of Omean, indicating plainly the position of Shador and of the opening in
the dome which led to the outer world.
These I studied until
they were indelibly imprinted in my memory. From Xodar I learned the duties and
customs of the guards who patrolled Shador. It seemed that during the hours set
aside for sleep only one man was on duty at a time. He paced a beat that passed
around the prison, at a distance of about a hundred feet from the building.
The pace of the
sentries, Xodar said, was very slow, requiring nearly ten minutes to make a
single round. This meant that for practically five minutes at a time each side
of the prison was unguarded as the sentry pursued his snail-like pace upon the
opposite side.
"This information
you ask," said Xodar, "will be all very valuable after we get out,
but nothing that you have asked has any bearing on that first and most
important consideration."
"We will get out
all right," I replied, laughing. "Leave that to me."
"When shall we
make the attempt?" he asked.
"The first night
that finds a small craft moored near the shore of Shador," I replied.
"But how will you
know that any craft is moored near Shador? The windows are far beyond our
reach."
"Not so, friend
Xodar; look!"
With a bound I sprang
to the bars of the window opposite us, and took a quick survey of the scene
without.
Several small craft and
two large battleships lay within a hundred yards of Shador.
"To-night," I
thought, and was just about to voice my decision to Xodar, when, without
warning, the door of our prison opened and a guard stepped in.
If the fellow saw me
there our chances of escape might quickly go glimmering, for I knew that they
would put me in irons if they had the slightest conception of the wonderful
agility which my earthly muscles gave me upon Mars.
The man had entered and
was standing facing the centre of the room, so that his back was toward me.
Five feet above me was the top of a partition wall separating our cell from the
next.
There was my only
chance to escape detection. If the fellow turned, I was lost; nor could I have
dropped to the floor undetected, since he was no nearly below me that I would
have struck him had I done so.
"Where is the
white man?" cried the guard of Xodar. "Issus commands his
presence." He started to turn to see if I were in another part of the
cell.
I scrambled up the iron
grating of the window until I could catch a good footing on the sill with one
foot; then I let go my hold and sprang for the partition top.
"What was
that?" I heard the deep voice of the black bellow as my metal grated
against the stone wall as I slipped over. Then I dropped lightly to the floor
of the cell beyond.
"Where is the
white slave?" again cried the guard.
"I know not,"
replied Xodar. "He was here even as you entered. I am not his keeper -- go
find him."
The black grumbled
something that I could not understand, and then I heard him unlocking the door
into one of the other cells on the further side. Listening intently, I caught
the sound as the door closed behind him. Then I sprang once more to the top of
the partition and dropped into my own cell beside the astonished Xodar.
"Do you see now
how we will escape?" I asked him in a whisper.
"I see how you
may," he replied, "but I am no wiser than before as to how I am to
pass these walls. Certain it is that I cannot bounce over them as you do."
We heard the guard
moving about from cell to cell, and finally, his rounds completed, he again
entered ours. When his eyes fell upon me they fairly bulged from his head.
"By the shell of
my first ancestor!" he roared. "Where have you been?"
"I have been in
prison since you put me here yesterday," I answered. "I was in this
room when you entered. You had better look to your eyesight."
He glared at me in
mingled rage and relief.
"Come," he
said. "Issus commands your presence."
He conducted me outside
the prison, leaving Xodar behind. There we found several other guards, and with
them the red Martian youth who occupied another cell upon Shador.
The journey I had taken
to the Temple of Issus on the preceding day was repeated. The guards kept the
red boy and myself separated, so that we had no opportunity to continue the
conversation that had been interrupted the previous night.
The youth's face had
haunted me. Where had I seen him before. There was something strangely familiar
in every line of him; in his carriage, his manner of speaking, his gestures. I
could have sworn that I knew him, and yet I knew too that I had never seen him
before.
When we reached the
gardens of Issus we were led away from the temple instead of toward it. The way
wound through enchanted parks to a mighty wall that towered a hundred feet in
air.
Massive gates gave
egress upon a small plain, surrounded by the same gorgeous forests that I had
seen at the foot of the Golden Cliffs.
Crowds of blacks were
strolling in the same direction that our guards were leading us, and with them
mingled my old friends the plant men and great white apes.
The brutal beasts moved
among the crowd as pet dogs might. If they were in the way the blacks pushed
them roughly to one side, or whacked them with the flat of a sword, and the
animals slunk away as in great fear.
Presently we came upon
our destination, a great amphitheatre situated at the further edge of the
plain, and about half a mile beyond the garden walls.
Through a massive
arched gateway the blacks poured in to take their seats, while our guards led
us to a smaller entrance near one end of the structure.
Through this we passed
into an enclosure beneath the seats, where we found a number of other prisoners
herded together under guard. Some of them were in irons, but for the most part
they seemed sufficiently awed by the presence of their guards to preclude any
possibility of attempted escape.
During the trip from
Shador I had had no opportunity to talk with my fellow-prisoner, but now that
we were safely within the barred paddock our guards abated their watchfulness,
with the result that I found myself able to approach the red Martian youth for
whom I felt such a strange attraction.
"What is the
object of this assembly?" I asked him. "Are we to fight for the
edification of the First Born, or is it something worse than that?"
"It is a part of
the monthly rites of Issus," he replied, "in which black men wash the
sins from their souls in the blood of men from the outer world. If, perchance,
the black is killed, it is evidence of his disloyalty to Issus -- the
unpardonable sin. If he lives through the contest he is held acquitted of the
charge that forced the sentence of the rites, as it is called, upon him.
"The forms of
combat vary. A number of us may be pitted together against an equal number, or
twice the number of blacks; or singly we may be sent forth to face wild beasts,
or some famous black warrior."
"And if we are
victorious," I asked, "what then -- freedom?"
He laughed.
"Freedom,
forsooth. The only freedom for us death. None who enters the domains of the
First Born ever leave. If we prove able fighters we are permitted to fight
often. If we are not mighty fighters -- " He shrugged his shoulders.
"Sooner or later we die in the arena."
"And you have
fought often?" I asked.
"Very often,"
he replied. "It is my only pleasure. Some hundred black devils have I
accounted for during nearly a year of the rites of Issus. My mother would be
very proud could she only know how well I have maintained the traditions of my
father's prowess."
"Your father must
have been a mighty warrior!" I said. "I have known most of the
warriors of Barsoom in my time; doubtless I knew him. Who was he?"
"My father was --
"
"Come,
calots!" cried the rough voice of a guard. "To the slaughter with
you," and roughly we were hustled to the steep incline that led to the
chambers far below which let out upon the arena.
The amphitheatre, like
all I had ever seen upon Barsoom, was built in a large excavation. Only the
highest seats, which formed the low wall surrounding the pit, were above the
level of the ground. The arena itself was far below the surface.
Just beneath the lowest
tier of seats was a series of barred cages on a level with the surface of the
arena. Into these we were herded. But, unfortunately, my youthful friend was
not of those who occupied a cage with me.
Directly opposite my
cage was the throne of Issus. Here the horrid creature squatted, surrounded by
a hundred slave maidens sparkling in jewelled trappings. Brilliant cloths of
many hues and strange patterns formed the soft cushion covering of the dais upon
which they reclined about her.
On four sides of the
throne and several feet below it stood three solid ranks of heavily armed
soldiery, elbow to elbow. In front of these were the high dignitaries of this
mock heaven -- gleaming blacks bedecked with precious stones, upon their
foreheads the insignia of their rank set in circles of gold.
On both sides of the
throne stretched a solid mass of humanity from top to bottom of the
amphitheatre. There were as many women as men, and each was clothed in the wondrously
wrought harness of his station and his house. With each black was from one to
three slaves, drawn from the domains of the therns and from the outer world.
The blacks are all "noble." There is no peasantry among the First
Born. Even the lowest soldier is a god, and has his slaves to wait upon him.
The First Born do no
work. The men fight -- that is a sacred privilege and duty; to fight and die
for Issus. The women do nothing, absolutely nothing. Slaves wash them, slaves
dress them, slaves feed them. There are some, even, who have slaves that talk
for them, and I saw one who sat during the rites with closed eyes while a slave
narrated to her the events that were transpiring within the arena.
The first event of the
day was the Tribute to Issus. It marked the end of those poor unfortunates who
had looked upon the divine glory of the goddess a full year before. There were
ten of them -- splendid beauties from the proud courts of mighty Jeddaks and
from the temples of the Holy Therns. For a year they had served in the retinue
of Issus; to-day they were to pay the price of this divine preferment with
their lives; tomorrow they would grace the tables of the court functionaries.
A huge black entered
the arena with the young women. Carefully he inspected them, felt of their
limbs and poked them in the ribs. Presently he selected one of their number
whom he led before the throne of Issus. He addressed some words to the goddess
which I could not hear. Issus nodded her head. The black raised his hands above
his head in token of salute, grasped the girl by the wrist, and dragged her
from the arena through a small doorway below the throne.
"Issus will dine
well to-night," said a prisoner beside me.
"What do you
mean?" I asked.
"That was her
dinner that old Thabis is taking to the kitchens. Didst not note how carefully
he selected the plumpest and tenderest of the lot?"
I growled out my curses
on the monster sitting opposite us on the gorgeous throne.
"Fume not,"
admonished my companion; "you will see far worse than that if you live
even a month among the First Born."
I turned again in time
to see the gate of a nearby cage thrown open and three monstrous white apes
spring into the arena. The girls shrank in a frightened group in the centre of
the enclosure.
One was on her knees
with imploring hands outstretched toward Issus; but the hideous deity only
leaned further forward in keener anticipation of the entertainment to come. At
length the apes spied the huddled knot of terror-stricken maidens and with demoniacal
shrieks of bestial frenzy, charged upon them.
A wave of mad fury
surged over me. The cruel cowardliness of the power-drunk creature whose
malignant mind conceived such frightful forms of torture stirred to their
uttermost depths my resentment and my manhood. The blood-red haze that presaged
death to my foes swam before my eyes.
The guard lolled before
the unbarred gate of the cage which confined me. What need of bars, indeed, to
keep those poor victims from rushing into the arena which the edict of the gods
had appointed as their death place!
A single blow sent the
black unconscious to the ground. Snatching up his long-sword, I sprang into the
arena. The apes were almost upon the maidens, but a couple of mighty bounds
were all my earthly muscles required to carry me to the centre of the
sand-strewn floor.
For an instant silence
reigned in the great amphitheatre, then a wild shout arose from the cages of
the doomed. My long-sword circled whirring through the air, and a great ape
sprawled, headless, at the feet of the fainting girls.
The other apes turned
now upon me, and as I stood facing them a sullen roar from the audience
answered the wild cheers from the cages. From the tail of my eye I saw a score
of guards rushing across the glistening sand toward me. Then a figure broke
from one of the cages behind them. It was the youth whose personality so
fascinated me.
He paused a moment
before the cages, with upraised sword.
"Come, men of the
outer world!" he shouted. "Let us make our deaths worth while, and at
the back of this unknown warrior turn this day's Tribute to Issus into an orgy
of revenge that will echo through the ages and cause black skins to blanch at
each repetition of the rites of Issus. Come! The racks without your cages are
filled with blades."
Without waiting to note
the outcome of his plea, he turned and bounded toward me. From every cage that
harboured red men a thunderous shout went up in answer to his exhortation. The
inner guards went down beneath howling mobs, and the cages vomited forth their
inmates hot with the lust to kill.
The racks that stood
without were stripped of the swords with which the prisoners were to have been
armed to enter their allotted combats, and a swarm of determined warriors sped
to our support.
The great apes,
towering in all their fifteen feet of height, had gone down before my sword
while the charging guards were still some distance away. Close behind them
pursued the youth. At my back were the young girls, and as it was in their
service that I fought, I remained standing there to meet my inevitable death,
but with the determination to give such an account of myself as would long be
remembered in the land of the First Born.
I noted the marvellous
speed of the young red man as he raced after the guards. Never had I seen such
speed in any Martian. His leaps and bounds were little short of those which my
earthly muscles had produced to create such awe and respect on the part of the
green Martians into whose hands I had fallen on that long-gone day that had
seen my first advent upon Mars.
The guards had not
reached me when he fell upon them from the rear, and as they turned, thinking
from the fierceness of his onslaught that a dozen were attacking them, I rushed
them from my side.
In the rapid fighting
that followed I had little chance to note aught else than the movements of my
immediate adversaries, but now and again I caught a fleeting glimpse of a
purring sword and a lightly springing figure of sinewy steel that filled my
heart with a strange yearning and a mighty but unaccountable pride.
On the handsome face of
the boy a grim smile played, and ever and anon he threw a taunting challenge to
the foes that faced him. In this and other ways his manner of fighting was
similar to that which had always marked me on the field of combat.
Perhaps it was this
vague likeness which made me love the boy, while the awful havoc that his sword
played amongst the blacks filled my soul with a tremendous respect for him.
For my part, I was
fighting as I had fought a thousand times before -- now sidestepping a wicked
thrust, now stepping quickly in to let my sword's point drink deep in a
foe-man's heart, before it buried itself in the throat of his companion.
We were having a merry
time of it, we two, when a great body of Issus' own guards were ordered into
the arena. On they came with fierce cries, while from every side the armed
prisoners swarmed upon them.
For half an hour it was
as though all hell had broken loose. In the walled confines of the arena we
fought in an inextricable mass -- howling, cursing, blood-streaked demons; and
ever the sword of the young red man flashed beside me.
Slowly and by repeated
commands I had succeeded in drawing the prisoners into a rough formation about
us, so that at last we fought formed into a rude circle in the centre of which
were the doomed maids.
Many had gone down on
both sides, but by far the greater havoc had been wrought in the ranks of the
guards of Issus. I could see messengers running swiftly through the audience,
and as they passed the nobles there unsheathed their swords and sprang into the
arena. They were going to annihilate us by force of numbers -- that was quite
evidently their plan.
I caught a glimpse of
Issus leaning far forward upon her throne, her hideous countenance distorted in
a horrid grimace of hate and rage, in which I thought I could distinguish an
expression of fear. It was that face that inspired me to the thing that
followed.
Quickly I ordered fifty
of the prisoners to drop back behind us and form a new circle about the
maidens.
"Remain and
protect them until I return," I commanded.
Then, turning to those
who formed the outer line, I cried, "Down with Issus! Follow me to the
throne; we will reap vengeance where vengeance is deserved."
The youth at my side
was the first to take up the cry of "Down with Issus!" and then at my
back and from all sides rose a hoarse shout, "To the throne! To the
throne!"
As one man we moved, an
irresistible fighting mass, over the bodies of dead and dying foes toward the
gorgeous throne of the Martian deity. Hordes of the doughtiest fighting-men of
the First Born poured from the audience to check our progress. We mowed them
down before us as they had been paper men.
"To the seats,
some of you!" I cried as we approached the arena's barrier wall. "Ten
of us can take the throne," for I had seen that Issus' guards had for the
most part entered the fray within the arena.
On both sides of me the
prisoners broke to left and right for the seats, vaulting the low wall with
dripping swords lusting for the crowded victims who awaited them.
In another moment the
entire amphitheatre was filled with the shrieks of the dying and the wounded,
mingled with the clash of arms and triumphant shouts of the victors.
Side by side the young
red man and I, with perhaps a dozen others, fought our way to the foot of the
throne. The remaining guards, reinforced by the high dignitaries and nobles of
the First Born, closed in between us and Issus, who sat leaning far forward
upon her carved sorapus bench, now screaming high-pitched commands to her
following, now hurling blighting curses upon those who sought to desecrate her
godhood.
The frightened slaves
about her trembled in wide-eyed expectancy, knowing not whether to pray for our
victory or our defeat. Several among them, proud daughters no doubt of some of
Barsoom's noblest warriors, snatched swords from the hands of the fallen and
fell upon the guards of Issus, but they were soon cut down; glorious martyrs to
a hopeless cause.
The men with us fought
well, but never since Tars Tarkas and I fought out that long, hot afternoon
shoulder to shoulder against the hordes of Warhoon in the dead sea bottom
before Thark, had I seen two men fight to such good purpose and with such
unconquerable ferocity as the young red man and I fought that day before the
throne of Issus, Goddess of Death, and of Life Eternal.
Man by man those who
stood between us and the carven sorapus wood bench went down before our blades.
Others swarmed in to fill the breach, but inch by inch, foot by foot we won
nearer and nearer to our goal.
Presently a cry went up
from a section of the stands near by -- "Rise slaves!" "Rise
slaves!" it rose and fell until it swelled to a mighty volume of sound
that swept in great billows around the entire amphitheatre.
For an instant, as
though by common assent, we ceased our fighting to look for the meaning of this
new note nor did it take but a moment to translate its significance. In all
parts of the structure the female slaves were falling upon their masters with
whatever weapon came first to hand. A dagger snatched from the harness of her
mistress was waved aloft by some fair slave, its shimmering blade crimson with
the lifeblood of its owner; swords plucked from the bodies of the dead about
them; heavy ornaments which could be turned into bludgeons -- such were the
implements with which these fair women wreaked the long-pent vengeance which at
best could but partially recompense them for the unspeakable cruelties and
indignities which their black masters had heaped upon them. And those who could
find no other weapons used their strong fingers and their gleaming teeth.
It was at once a sight
to make one shudder and to cheer; but in a brief second we were engaged once
more in our own battle with only the unquenchable battlecry of the women to
remind us that they still fought -- "Rise slaves!" "Rise slaves!"
Only a single thin rank
of men now stood between us and Issus. Her face was blue with terror. Foam
flecked her lips. She seemed too paralysed with fear to move. Only the youth
and I fought now. The others all had fallen, and I was like to have gone down
too from a nasty long-sword cut had not a hand reached out from behind my
adversary and clutched his elbow as the blade was falling upon me. The youth
sprang to my side and ran his sword through the fellow before he could recover
to deliver another blow.
I should have died even
then but for that as my sword was tight wedged in the breastbone of a Dator of
the First Born. As the fellow went down I snatched his sword from him and over
his prostrate body looked into the eyes of the one whose quick hand had saved
me from the first cut of his sword -- it was Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang.
"Fly, my
Prince!" she cried. "It is useless to fight them longer. All within
the arena are dead. All who charged the throne are dead but you and this youth.
Only among the seats are there left any of your fighting-men, and they and the
slave women are fast being cut down. Listen! You can scarce hear the battle-cry
of the women now for nearly all are dead. For each one of you there are ten
thousand blacks within the domains of the First Born. Break for the open and
the sea of Korus. With your mighty sword arm you may yet win to the Golden
Cliffs and the templed gardens of the Holy Therns. There tell your story to
Matai Shang, my father. He will keep you, and together you may find a way to
rescue me. Fly while there is yet a bare chance for flight."
But that was not my
mission, nor could I see much to be preferred in the cruel hospitality of the
Holy Therns to that of the First Born.
"Down with
Issus!" I shouted, and together the boy and I took up the fight once more.
Two blacks went down with our swords in their vitals, and we stood face to face
with Issus. As my sword went up to end her horrid career her paralysis left
her, and with an ear-piercing shriek she turned to flee. Directly behind her a
black gulf suddenly yawned in the flooring of the dais. She sprang for the
opening with the youth and I close at her heels. Her scattered guard rallied at
her cry and rushed for us. A blow fell upon the head of the youth. He staggered
and would have fallen, but I caught him in my left arm and turned to face an
infuriated mob of religious fanatics crazed by the affront I had put upon their
goddess, just as Issus disappeared into the black depths beneath me.
FOR AN INSTANT I stood
there before they fell upon me, but the first rush of them forced me back a
step or two. My foot felt for the floor but found only empty space. I had
backed into the pit which had received Issus. For a second I toppled there upon
the brink. Then I too with the boy still tightly clutched in my arms pitched
backward into the black abyss.
We struck a polished
chute, the opening above us closed as magically as it had opened, and we shot
down, unharmed, into a dimly lighted apartment far below the arena.
As I rose to my feet
the first thing I saw was the malignant countenance of Issus glaring at me
through the heavy bars of a grated door at one side of the chamber.
"Rash
mortal!" she shrilled. "You shall pay the awful penalty for your
blasphemy in this secret cell. Here you shall lie alone and in darkness with
the carcass of your accomplice festering in its rottenness by your side, until
crazed by loneliness and hunger you feed upon the crawling maggots that were
once a man."
That was all. In
another instant she was gone, and the dim light which had filled the cell faded
into Cimmerian blackness.
"Pleasant old
lady," said a voice at my side.
"Who speaks?"
I asked.
"'Tis I, your
companion, who has had the honour this day of fighting shoulder to shoulder
with the greatest warrior that ever wore metal upon Barsoom."
"I thank God that
you are not dead," I said. "I feared for that nasty cut upon your
head."
"It but stunned
me," he replied. "A mere scratch."
"Maybe it were as
well had it been final," I said. "We seem to be in a pretty fix here
with a splendid chance of dying of starvation and thirst."
"Where are
we?"
"Beneath the
arena," I replied. "We tumbled down the shaft that swallowed Issus as
she was almost at our mercy."
He laughed a low laugh
of pleasure and relief, and then reaching out through the inky blackness he
sought my shoulder and pulled my ear close to his mouth.
"Nothing could be
better," he whispered. "There are secrets within the secrets of Issus
of which Issus herself does not dream."
"What do you
mean?"
"I laboured with
the other slaves a year since in the remodelling of these subterranean
galleries, and at that time we found below these an ancient system of corridors
and chambers that had been sealed up for ages. The blacks in charge of the work
explored them, taking several of us along to do whatever work there might be
occasion for. I know the entire system perfectly.
"There are miles
of corridors honeycombing the ground beneath the gardens and the temple itself,
and there is one passage that leads down to and connects with the lower regions
that open on the water shaft that gives passage to Omean.
"If we can reach
the submarine undetected we may yet make the sea in which there are many
islands where the blacks never go. There we may live for a time, and who knows
what may transpire to aid us to escape?"
He had spoken all in a
low whisper, evidently fearing spying ears even here, and so I answered him in
the same subdued tone.
"Lead back to
Shador, my friend," I whispered. "Xodar, the black, is there. We were
to attempt our escape together, so I cannot desert him."
"No," said
the boy, "one cannot desert a friend. It were better to be recaptured
ourselves than that."
Then he commenced
groping his way about the floor of the dark chamber searching for the trap that
led to the corridors beneath. At length he summoned me by a low,
"S-s-t," and I crept toward the sound of his voice to find him
kneeling on the brink of an opening in the floor.
"There is a drop
here of about ten feet," he whispered. "Hang by your hands and you
will alight safely on a level floor of soft sand."
Very quietly I lowered
myself from the inky cell above into the inky pit below. So utterly dark was it
that we could not see our hands at an inch from our noses. Never, I think, have
I known such complete absence of light as existed in the pits of Issus.
For an instant I hung
in mid air. There is a strange sensation connected with an experience of that
nature which is quite difficult to describe. When the feet tread empty air and
the distance below is shrouded in darkness there is a feeling akin to panic at
the thought of releasing the hold and taking the plunge into unknown depths.
Although the boy had
told me that it was but ten feet to the floor below I experienced the same
thrills as though I were hanging above a bottomless pit. Then I released my
hold and dropped -- four feet to a soft cushion of sand.
The boy followed me.
"Raise me to your
shoulders," he said, "and I will replace the trap."
This done he took me by
the hand, leading me very slowly, with much feeling about and frequent halts to
assure himself that he did not stray into wrong passageways.
Presently we commenced
the descent of a very steep incline.
"It will not be
long," he said, "before we shall have light. At the lower levels we
meet the same strata of phosphorescent rock that illuminates Omean."
Never shall I forget
that trip through the pits of Issus. While it was devoid of important incidents
yet it was filled for me with a strange charm of excitement and adventure which
I think I must have hinged principally on the unguessable antiquity of these
long-forgotten corridors. The things which the Stygian darkness hid from my
objective eye could not have been half so wonderful as the pictures which my
imagination wrought as it conjured to life again the ancient peoples of this
dying world and set them once more to the labours, the intrigues, the mysteries
and the cruelties which they had practised to make their last stand against the
swarming hordes of the dead sea bottoms that had driven them step by step to
the uttermost pinnacle of the world where they were now intrenched behind an
impenetrable barrier of superstition.
In addition to the
green men there had been three principal races upon Barsoom. The blacks, the
whites, and a race of yellow men. As the waters of the planet dried and the
seas receded, all other resources dwindled until life upon the planet became a
constant battle for survival.
The various races had
made war upon one another for ages, and the three higher types had easily
bested the green savages of the water places of the world, but now that the
receding seas necessitated constant abandonment of their fortified cities and
forced upon them a more or less nomadic life in which they became separated
into smaller communities they soon fell prey to the fierce hordes of green men.
The result was a partial amalgamation of the blacks, whites and yellows, the
result of which is shown in the present splendid race of red men.
I had always supposed
that all traces of the original races had disappeared from the face of Mars,
yet within the past four days I had found both whites and blacks in great
multitudes. Could it be possible that in some far-off corner of the planet
there still existed a remnant of the ancient race of yellow men?
My reveries were broken
in upon by a low exclamation from the boy.
"At last, the
lighted way," he cried, and looking up I beheld at a long distance before
us a dim radiance.
As we advanced the
light increased until presently we emerged into well-lighted passageways. From
then on our progress was rapid until we came suddenly to the end of a corridor
that let directly upon the ledge surrounding the pool of the submarine.
The craft lay at her
moorings with uncovered hatch. Raising his finger to his lips and then tapping
his sword in a significant manner, the youth crept noiselessly toward the
vessel. I was close at his heels.
Silently we dropped to
the deserted deck, and on hands and knees crawled toward the hatchway. A
stealthy glance below revealed no guard in sight, and so with the quickness and
the soundlessness of cats we dropped together into the main cabin of the
submarine. Even here was no sign of life. Quickly we covered and secured the
hatch.
Then the boy stepped
into the pilot house, touched a button and the boat sank amid swirling waters
toward the bottom of the shaft. Even then there was no scurrying of feet as we
had expected, and while the boy remained to direct the boat I slid from cabin to
cabin in futile search for some member of the crew. The craft was entirely
deserted. Such good fortune seemed almost unbelievable.
When I returned to the
pilot house to report the good news to my companion he handed me a paper.
"This may explain
the absence of the crew," he said.
It was a radio-aerial
message to the commander of the submarine:
"The slaves have
risen. Come with what men you have and those that you can gather on the way.
Too late to get aid from Omean. They are massacring all within the
amphitheatre. Issus is threatened. Haste.
"ZITHAD"
"Zithad is Dator
of the guards of Issus," explained the youth. "We gave them a bad
scare -- one that they will not soon forget."
"Let us hope that
it is but the beginning of the end of Issus," I said.
"Only our first
ancestor knows," he replied.
We reached the
submarine pool in Omean without incident. Here we debated the wisdom of sinking
the craft before leaving her, but finally decided that it would add nothing to
our chances for escape. There were plenty of blacks on Omean to thwart us were
we apprehended; however many more might come from the temples and gardens of
Issus would not in any decrease our chances.
We were now in a
quandary as to how to pass the guards who patrolled the island about the pool.
At last I hit upon a plan.
"What is the name
or title of the officer in charge of these guards?" I asked the boy.
"A fellow named
Torith was on duty when we entered this morning," he replied.
"Good. And what is
the name of the commander of the submarine?"
"Yersted."
I found a dispatch
blank in the cabin and wrote the following order:
"Dator Torith: Return these two slaves at once to Shador. "YERSTED"
That will be the
simpler way to return," I said, smiling, as I handed the forged order to
the boy. "Come, we shall see now how well it works."
"But our
swords!" he exclaimed. "What shall we say to explain them?"
"Since we cannot
explain them we shall have to leave them behind us," I replied.
"Is it not the
extreme of rashness to thus put ourselves again, unarmed, in the power of the
First Born?"
"It is the only
way," I answered. "You may trust me to find a way out of the prison
of Shador, and I think, once out, that we shall find no great difficulty in
arming ourselves once more in a country which abounds so plentifully in armed
men."
"As you say,"
he replied with a smile and shrug. "I could not follow another leader who
inspired greater confidence than you. Come, let us put your ruse to the
test."
Boldly we emerged from
the hatchway of the craft, leaving our swords behind us, and strode to the main
exit which led to the sentry's post and the office of the Dator of the guard.
At sight of us the
members of the guard sprang forward in surprise, and with levelled rifles
halted us. I held out the message to one of them. He took it and seeing to whom
it was addressed turned and handed it to Torith who was emerging from his
office to learn the cause of the commotion.
The black read the
order, and for a moment eyed us with evident suspicion.
"Where is Dator
Yersted?" he asked, and my heart sank within me, as I cursed myself for a
stupid fool in not having sunk the submarine to make good the lie that I must
tell.
"His orders were
to return immediately to the temple landing," I replied.
Torith took a half step
toward the entrance to the pool as though to corroborate my story. For that
instant everything hung in the balance, for had he done so and found the empty
submarine still lying at her wharf the whole weak fabric of my concoction would
have tumbled about our heads; but evidently he decided the message must be
genuine, nor indeed was there any good reason to doubt it since it would scarce
have seemed credible to him that two slaves would voluntarily have given
themselves into custody in any such manner as this. It was the very boldness of
the plan which rendered it successful.
"Were you
connected with the rising of the slaves?" asked Torith. "We have just
had meagre reports of some such event."
"All were
involved," I replied. "But it amounted to little. The guards quickly
overcame and killed the majority of us."
He seemed satisfied
with this reply. "Take them to Shador," he ordered, turning to one of
his subordinates. We entered a small boat lying beside the island, and in a few
minutes were disembarking upon Shador. Here we were returned to our respective
cells; I with Xodar, the boy by himself; and behind locked doors we were again
prisoners of the First Born.
XODAR LISTENED in
incredulous astonishment to my narration of the events which had transpired
within the arena at the rites of Issus. He could scarce conceive, even though
he had already professed his doubt as to the deity of Issus, that one could
threaten her with sword in hand and not be blasted into a thousand fragments by
the mere fury of her divine wrath.
"It is the final
proof," he said, at last. "No more is needed to completely shatter
the last remnant of my superstitious belief in the divinity of Issus. She is
only a wicked old woman, wielding a mighty power for evil through machinations
that have kept her own people and all Barsoom in religious ignorance for
ages."
"She is still
all-powerful here, however," I replied. "So it behooves us to leave
at the first moment that appears at all propitious."
"I hope that you
may find a propitious moment," he said, with a laugh, "for it is
certain that in all my life I have never seen one in which a prisoner of the
First Born might escape."
"To-night will do
as well as any," I replied.
"It will soon be
night," said Xodar. "How may I aid in the adventure?"
"Can you
swim?" I asked him.
"No slimy silian
that haunts the depths of Korus is more at home in water than is Xodar,"
he replied.
"Good. The red one
in all probability cannot swim," I said, "since there is scarce
enough water in all their domains to float the tiniest craft. One of us
therefore will have to support him through the sea to the craft we select. I
had hoped that we might make the entire distance below the surface, but I fear
that the red youth could not thus perform the trip. Even the bravest of the
brave among them are terrorized at the mere thought of deep water, for it has
been ages since their forebears saw a lake, a river or a sea."
"The red one is to
accompany us?" asked Xodar.
"Yes."
"It is well. Three
swords are better than two. Especially when the third is as mighty as this
fellow's. I have seen him battle in the arena at the rites of Issus many times.
Never, until I saw you fight, had I seen one who seemed unconquerable even in
the face of great odds. One might think you two master and pupil, or father and
son. Come to recall his face there is a resemblance between you. It is very
marked when you fight -- there is the same grim smile, the same maddening
contempt for your adversary apparent in every movement of your bodies and in
every changing expression of your faces."
"Be that as it
may, Xodar, he is a great fighter. I think that we will make a trio difficult
to overcome, and if my friend Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, were but one of us
we could fight our way from one end of Barsoom to the other even though the
whole world were pitted against us."
"It will be,"
said Xodar, "when they find from whence you have come. That is but one of
the superstitions which Issus has foisted upon a credulous humanity. She works
through the Holy Therns who are as ignorant of her real self as are the
Barsoomians of the outer world. Her decrees are borne to the therns written in
blood upon a strange parchment. The poor deluded fools think that they are
receiving the revelations of a goddess through some supernatural agency, since
they find these messages upon their guarded altars to which none could have
access without detection. I myself have borne these messages for Issus for many
years. There is a long tunnel from the temple of Issus to the principal temple
of Matai Shang. It was dug ages ago by the slaves of the First Born in such
utter secrecy that no thern ever guessed its existence.
"The therns for
their part have temples dotted about the entire civilized world. Here priests
whom the people never see communicate the doctrine of the Mysterious River Iss,
the Valley Dor, and the Lost Sea of Korus to persuade the poor deluded
creatures to take the voluntary pilgrimage that swells the wealth of the Holy
Therns and adds to the numbers of their slaves.
"Thus the therns
are used as the principal means for collecting the wealth and labour that the
First Born wrest from them as they need it. Occasionally the First Born
themselves make raids upon the outer world. It is then that they capture many
females of the royal houses of the red men, and take the newest in battleships
and the trained artisans who build them, that they may copy what they cannot
create.
"We are a
non-productive race, priding ourselves upon our non-productiveness. It is
criminal for a First Born to labour or invent. That is the work of the lower
orders, who live merely that the First Born may enjoy long lives of luxury and
idleness. With us fighting is all that counts; were it not for that there would
be more of the First Born than all the creatures of Barsoom could support, for
in so far as I know none of us ever dies a natural death. Our females would
live for ever but for the fact that we tire of them and remove them to make
place for others. Issus alone of all is protected against death. She has lived
for countless ages."
"Would not the
other Barsoomians live for ever but for the doctrine of the voluntary
pilgrimage which drags them to the bosom of Iss at or before their thousandth
year?" I asked him.
"I feel now that
there is no doubt but that they are precisely the same species of creature as
the First Born, and I hope that I shall live to fight for them in atonement of
the sins I have committed against them through the ignorance born of
generations of false teaching."
As he ceased speaking a
weird call rang out across the waters of Omean. I had heard it at the same time
the previous evening and knew that it marked the ending of the day, when the
men of Omean spread their silks upon the deck of battleship and cruiser and
fall into the dreamless sleep of Mars.
Our guard entered to
inspect us for the last time before the new day broke upon the world above. His
duty was soon performed and the heavy door of our prison closed behind him --
we were alone for the night.
I gave him time to
return to his quarters, as Xodar said he probably would do, then I sprang to
the grated window and surveyed the nearby waters. At a little distance from the
island, a quarter of a mile perhaps, lay a monster battleship, while between
her and the shore were a number of smaller cruisers and one-man scouts. Upon
the battleship alone was there a watch. I could see him plainly in the upper
works of the ship, and as I watched I saw him spread his sleeping silks upon
the tiny platform in which he was stationed. Soon he threw himself at full
length upon his couch. The discipline on Omean was lax indeed. But it is not to
be wondered at since no enemy guessed the existence upon Barsoom of such a
fleet, or even of the First Born, or the Sea of Omean. Why indeed should they
maintain a watch?
Presently I dropped to
the floor again and talked with Xodar, describing the various craft I had seen.
"There is one
there," he said, "my personal property, built to carry five men, that
is the swiftest of the swift. If we can board her we can at least make a
memorable run for liberty," and then he went on to describe to me the
equipment of the boat; her engines, and all that went to make her the flier
that she was.
In his explanation I
recognized a trick of gearing that Kantos Kan had taught me that time we sailed
under false names in the navy of Zodanga beneath Sab Than, the Prince. And I
knew then that the First Born had stolen it from the ships of Helium, for only
they are thus geared. And I knew too that Xodar spoke the truth when he lauded
the speed of his little craft, for nothing that cleaves the thin air of Mars
can approximate the speed of the ships of Helium.
We decided to wait for
an hour at least until all the stragglers had sought their silks. In the
meantime I was to fetch the red youth to our cell so that we would be in
readiness to make our rash break for freedom together.
I sprang to the top of
our partition wall and pulled myself up on to it. There I found a flat surface
about a foot in width and along this I walked until I came to the cell in which
I saw the boy sitting upon his bench. He had been leaning back against the wall
looking up at the glowing dome above Omean, and when he spied me balancing upon
the partition wall above him his eyes opened wide in astonishment. Then a wide
grin of appreciative understanding spread across his countenance.
As I stooped to drop to
the floor beside him he motioned me to wait, and coming close below me
whispered: "Catch my hand; I can almost leap to the top of that wall
myself. I have tried it many times, and each day I come a little closer. Some
day I should have been able to make it."
I lay upon my belly
across the wall and reached my hand far down toward him. With a little run from
the centre of the cell he sprang up until I grasped his outstretched hand, and
thus I pulled him to the wall's top beside me.
"You are the first
jumper I ever saw among the red men of Barsoom," I said.
He smiled. "It is
not strange. I will tell you why when we have more time."
Together we returned to
the cell in which Xodar sat; descending to talk with him until the hour had
passed.
There we made our plans
for the immediate future, binding ourselves by a solemn oath to fight to the
death for one another against whatsoever enemies should confront us, for we
knew that even should we succeed in escaping the First Born we might still have
a whole world against us -- the power of religious superstition is mighty.
It was agreed that I
should navigate the craft after we had reached her, and that if we made the
outer world in safety we should attempt to reach Helium without a stop.
"Why Helium?"
asked the red youth.
"I am a prince of
Helium," I replied.
He gave me a peculiar
look, but said nothing further on the subject. I wondered at the time what the
significance of his expression might be, but in the press of other matters it
soon left my mind, nor did I have occasion to think of it again until later.
"Come," I
said at length, "now is as good a time as any. Let us go."
Another moment found me
at the top of the partition wall again with the boy beside me. Unbuckling my
harness I snapped it together with a single long strap which I lowered to the
waiting Xodar below. He grasped the end and was soon sitting beside us.
"How simple,"
he laughed.
"The balance
should be even simpler," I replied. Then I raised myself to the top of the
outer wall of the prison, just so that I could peer over and locate the passing
sentry. For a matter of five minutes I waited and then he came in sight on his
slow and snail-like beat about the structure.
I watched him until he
had made the turn at the end of the building which carried him out of sight of
the side of the prison that was to witness our dash for freedom. The moment his
form disappeared I grasped Xodar and drew him to the top of the wall. Placing
one end of my harness strap in his hands I lowered him quickly to the ground
below. Then the boy grasped the strap and slid down to Xodar's side.
In accordance with our
arrangement they did not wait for me, but walked slowly toward the water, a
matter of a hundred yards, directly past the guard-house filled with sleeping
soldiers.
They had taken scarce a
dozen steps when I too dropped to the ground and followed them leisurely toward
the shore. As I passed the guard-house the thought of all the good blades lying
there gave me pause, for if ever men were to have need of swords it was my companions
and I on the perilous trip upon which we were about to embark.
I glanced toward Xodar
and the youth and saw that they had slipped over the edge of the dock into the
water. In accordance with our plan they were to remain there clinging to the
metal rings which studded the concrete-like substance of the dock at the
water's level, with only their mouths and noses above the surface of the sea,
until I should join them.
The lure of the swords
within the guard-house was strong upon me, and I hesitated a moment, half
inclined to risk the attempt to take the few we needed. That he who hesitates
is lost proved itself a true aphorism in this instance, for another moment saw
me creeping stealthily toward the door of the guard-house.
Gently I pressed it open
a crack; enough to discover a dozen blacks stretched upon their silks in
profound slumber. At the far side of the room a rack held the swords and
firearms of the men. Warily I pushed the door a trifle wider to admit my body.
A hinge gave out a resentful groan. One of the men stirred, and my heart stood
still. I cursed myself for a fool to have thus jeopardized our chances for
escape; but there was nothing for it now but to see the adventure through.
With a spring as swift
and as noiseless as a tiger's I lit beside the guardsman who had moved. My
hands hovered about his throat awaiting the moment that his eyes should open.
For what seemed an eternity to my overwrought nerves I remained poised thus.
Then the fellow turned again upon his side and resumed the even respiration of
deep slumber.
Carefully I picked my
way between and over the soldiers until I had gained the rack at the far side
of the room. Here I turned to survey the sleeping men. All were quiet. Their
regular breathing rose and fell in a soothing rhythm that seemed to me the
sweetest music I ever had heard.
Gingerly I drew a
long-sword from the rack. The scraping of the scabbard against its holder as I
withdrew it sounded like the filing of cast iron with a great rasp, and I
looked to see the room immediately filled with alarmed and attacking guardsmen.
But none stirred.
The second sword I
withdrew noiselessly, but the third clanked in its scabbard with a frightful
din. I knew that it must awaken some of the men at least, and was on the point
of forestalling their attack by a rapid charge for the doorway, when again, to
my intense surprise, not a black moved. Either they were wondrous heavy
sleepers or else the noises that I made were really much less than they seemed
to me.
I was about to leave
the rack when my attention was attracted by the revolvers. I knew that I could
not carry more than one away with me, for I was already too heavily laden to
move quietly with any degree of safety or speed. As I took one of them from its
pin my eye fell for the first time on an open window beside the rack. Ah, here
was a splendid means of escape, for it let directly upon the dock, not twenty
feet from the water's edge.
And as I congratulated
myself, I heard the door opposite me open, and there looking me full in the
face stood the officer of the guard. He evidently took in the situation at a
glance and appreciated the gravity of it as quickly as I, for our revolvers
came up simultaneously and the sounds of the two reports were as one as we
touched the buttons on the grips that exploded the cartridges.
I felt the wind of his
bullet as it whizzed past my ear, and at the same instant I saw him crumple to
the ground. Where I hit him I do not know, nor if I killed him, for scarce had
he started to collapse when I was through the window at my rear. In another
second the waters of Omean closed above my head, and the three of us were
making for the little flier a hundred yards away.
Xodar was burdened with
the boy, and I with the three long-swords. The revolver I had dropped, so that
while we were both strong swimmers it seemed to me that we moved at a snail's
pace through the water. I was swimming entirely beneath the surface, but Xodar
was compelled to rise often to let the youth breathe, so it was a wonder that
we were not discovered long before we were.
In fact we reached the
boat's side and were all aboard before the watch upon the battleship, aroused
by the shots, detected us. Then an alarm gun bellowed from a ship's bow, its
deep boom reverberating in deafening tones beneath the rocky dome of Omean.
Instantly the sleeping
thousands were awake. The decks of a thousand monster craft teemed with
fighting-men, for an alarm on Omean was a thing of rare occurrence.
We cast away before the
sound of the first gun had died, and another second saw us rising swiftly from
the surface of the sea. I lay at full length along the deck with the levers and
buttons of control before me. Xodar and the boy were stretched directly behind
me, prone also that we might offer as little resistance to the air as possible.
"Rise high,"
whispered Xodar. "They dare not fire their heavy guns toward the dome --
the fragments of the shells would drop back among their own craft. If we are
high enough our keel plates will protect us from rifle fire."
I did as he bade. Below
us we could see the men leaping into the water by hundreds, and striking out
for the small cruisers and one-man fliers that lay moored about the big ships.
The larger craft were getting under way, following us rapidly, but not rising
from the water.
"A little to your
right," cried Xodar, for there are no points of compass upon Omean where
every direction is due north.
The pandemonium that
had broken out below us was deafening. Rifles cracked, officers shouted orders,
men yelled directions to one another from the water and from the decks of
myriad boats, while through all ran the purr of countless propellers cutting
water and air.
I had not dared pull my
speed lever to the highest for fear of overrunning the mouth of the shaft that
passed from Omean's dome to the world above, but even so we were hitting a clip
that I doubt has ever been equalled on the windless sea.
The smaller fliers were
commencing to rise toward us when Xodar shouted: "The shaft! The shaft!
Dead ahead," and I saw the opening, black and yawning in the glowing dome
of this underworld.
A ten-man cruiser was
rising directly in front to cut off our escape. It was the only vessel that
stood in our way, but at the rate that it was traveling it would come between
us and the shaft in plenty of time to thwart our plans.
It was rising at an
angle of about forty-five degrees dead ahead of us, with the evident intention
of combing us with grappling hooks from above as it skimmed low over our deck.
There was but one
forlorn hope for us, and I took it. It was useless to try to pass over her, for
that would have allowed her to force us against the rocky dome above, and we
were already too near that as it was. To have attempted to dive below her would
have put us entirely at her mercy, and precisely where she wanted us. On either
side a hundred other menacing craft were hastening toward us. The alternative
was filled with risk -- in fact it was all risk, with but a slender chance of
success.
As we neared the
cruiser I rose as though to pass above her, so that she would do just what she
did do, rise at a steeper angle to force me still higher. Then as we were
almost upon her I yelled to my companions to hold tight, and throwing the
little vessel into her highest speed I deflected her bows at the same instant
until we were running horizontally and at terrific velocity straight for the
cruiser's keel.
Her commander may have
seen my intentions then, but it was too late. Almost at the instant of impact I
turned my bows upward, and then with a shattering jolt we were in collision.
What I had hoped for happened. The cruiser, already tilted at a perilous angle,
was carried completely over backward by the impact of my smaller vessel. Her
crew fell twisting and screaming through the air to the water far below, while
the cruiser, her propellers still madly churning, dived swiftly headforemost
after them to the bottom of the Sea of Omean.
The collision crushed
our steel bows, and notwithstanding every effort on our part came near to
hurling us from the deck. As it was we landed in a wildly clutching heap at the
very extremity of the flier, where Xodar and I succeeded in grasping the hand-rail,
but the boy would have plunged overboard had I not fortunately grasped his
ankle as he was already partially over.
Unguided, our vessel
careened wildly in its mad flight, rising ever nearer the rocks above. It took
but an instant, however, for me to regain the levers, and with the roof barely
fifty feet above I turned her nose once more into the horizontal plane and
headed her again for the black mouth of the shaft.
The collision had
retarded our progress and now a hundred swift scouts were close upon us. Xodar
had told me that ascending the shaft by virtue of our repulsive rays alone
would give our enemies their best chance to overtake us, since our propellers
would be idle and in rising we would be outclassed by many of our pursuers. The
swifter craft are seldom equipped with large buoyancy tanks, since the added
bulk of them tends to reduce a vessel's speed.
As many boats were now
quite close to us it was inevitable that we would be quickly overhauled in the
shaft, and captured or killed in short order.
To me there always
seems a way to gain the opposite side of an obstacle. If one cannot pass over
it, or below it, or around it, why then there is but a single alternative left,
and that is to pass through it. I could not get around the fact that many of
these other boats could rise faster than ours by the fact of their greater
buoyancy, but I was none the less determined to reach the outer world far in
advance of them or die a death of my own choosing in event of failure.
"Reverse?"
screamed Xodar, behind me. "For the love of your first ancestor, reverse.
We are at the shaft."
"Hold tight!"
I screamed in reply. "Grasp the boy and hold tight -- we are going
straight up the shaft."
The words were scarce
out of my mouth as we swept beneath the pitch-black opening. I threw the bow
hard up, dragged the speed lever to its last notch, and clutching a stanchion
with one hand and the steering-wheel with the other hung on like grim death and
consigned my soul to its author.
I heard a little
exclamation of surprise from Xodar, followed by a grim laugh. The boy laughed
too and said something which I could not catch for the whistling of the wind of
our awful speed.
I looked above my head,
hoping to catch the gleam of stars by which I could direct our course and hold
the hurtling thing that bore us true to the centre of the shaft. To have
touched the side at the speed we were making would doubtless have resulted in
instant death for us all. But not a star showed above -- only utter and
impenetrable darkness.
Then I glanced below
me, and there I saw a rapidly diminishing circle of light -- the mouth of the
opening above the phosphorescent radiance of Omean. By this I steered,
endeavouring to keep the circle of light below me ever perfect. At best it was
but a slender cord that held us from destruction, and I think that I steered
that night more by intuition and blind faith than by skill or reason.
We were not long in the
shaft, and possibly the very fact of our enormous speed saved us, for evidently
we started in the right direction and so quickly were we out again that we had
no time to alter our course. Omean lies perhaps two miles below the surface
crust of Mars. Our speed must have approximated two hundred miles an hour, for
Martian fliers are swift, so that at most we were in the shaft not over forty
seconds.
We must have been out
of it for some seconds before I realised that we had accomplished the
impossible. Black darkness enshrouded all about us. There were neither moons
nor stars. Never before had I seen such a thing upon Mars, and for the moment I
was nonplussed. Then the explanation came to me. It was summer at the south
pole. The ice cap was melting and those meteoric phenomena, clouds, unknown
upon the greater part of Barsoom, were shutting out the light of heaven from
this portion of the planet.
Fortunate indeed it was
for us, nor did it take me long to grasp the opportunity for escape which this
happy condition offered us. Keeping the boat's nose at a stiff angle I raced
her for the impenetrable curtain which Nature had hung above this dying world
to shut us out from the sight of our pursuing enemies.
We plunged through the
cold camp fog without diminishing our speed, and in a moment emerged into the
glorious light of the two moons and the million stars. I dropped into a
horizontal course and headed due north. Our enemies were a good half-hour
behind us with no conception of our direction. We had performed the miraculous
and come through a thousand dangers unscathed -- we had escaped from the land
of the First Born. No other prisoners in all the ages of Barsoom had done this
thing, and now as I looked back upon it it did not seem to have been so
difficult after all.
I said as much to
Xodar, over my shoulder.
"It is very
wonderful, nevertheless," he replied. "No one else could have
accomplished it but John Carter."
At the sound of that
name the boy jumped to his feet.
"John
Carter!" he cried. "John Carter! Why, man, John Carter, Prince of
Helium, has been dead for years. I am his son."
MY SON! I could not
believe my ears. Slowly I rose and faced the handsome youth. Now that I looked
at him closely I commenced to see why his face and personality had attracted me
so strongly. There was much of his mother's incomparable beauty in his
clear-cut features, but it was strongly masculine beauty, and his grey eyes and
the expression of them were mine.
The boy stood facing
me, half hope and half uncertainty in his look.
"Tell me of your
mother," I said. "Tell me all you can of the years that I have been
robbed by a relentless fate of her dear companionship."
With a cry of pleasure
he sprang toward me and threw his arms about my neck, and for a brief moment as
I held my boy close to me the tears welled to my eyes and I was like to have
choked after the manner of some maudlin fool -- but I do not regret it, nor am
I ashamed. A long life has taught me that a man may seem weak where women and
children are concerned and yet be anything but a weakling in the sterner
avenues of life.
"Your stature,
your manner, the terrible ferocity of your swordsmanship," said the boy,
"are as my mother has described them to me a thousand times -- but even
with such evidence I could scarce credit the truth of what seemed so improbable
to me, however much I desired it to be true. Do you know what thing it was that
convinced me more than all the others?"
"What, my
boy?" I asked.
"Your first words
to me -- they were of my mother. None else but the man who loved her as she has
told me my father did would have thought first of her."
"For long years,
my son, I can scarce recall a moment that the radiant vision of your mother's
face has not been ever before me. Tell me of her."
"Those who have
known her longest say that she has not changed, unless it be to grow more
beautiful -- were that possible. Only, when she thinks I am not about to see
her, her face grows very sad, and, oh, so wistful. She thinks ever of you, my
father, and all Helium mourns with her and for her. Her grandfather's people
love her. They loved you also, and fairly worship your memory as the saviour of
Barsoom.
"Each year that
brings its anniversary of the day that saw you racing across a near dead world
to unlock the secret of that awful portal behind which lay the mighty power of
life for countless millions a great festival is held in your honour; but there
are tears mingled with the thanksgiving -- tears of real regret that the author
of the happiness is not with them to share the joy of living he died to give
them. Upon all Barsoom there is no greater name than John Carter."
"And by what name
has your mother called you, my boy?" I asked.
"The people of
Helium asked that I be named with my father's name, but my mother said no, that
you and she had chosen a name for me together, and that your wish must be
honoured before all others, so the name that she called me is the one that you
desired, a combination of hers and yours -- Carthoris."
Xodar had been at the
wheel as I talked with my son, and now he called me.
"She is dropping
badly by the head, John Carter," he said. "So long as we were rising
at a stiff angle it was not noticeable, but now that I am trying to keep a
horizontal course it is different. The wound in her bow has opened one of her
forward ray tanks."
It was true, and after
I had examined the damage I found it a much graver matter than I had
anticipated. Not only was the forced angle at which we were compelled to
maintain the bow in order to keep a horizontal course greatly impeding our
speed, but at the rate that we were losing our repulsive rays from the forward
tanks it was but a question of an hour or more when we would be floating stern
up and helpless.
We had slightly reduced
our speed with the dawning of a sense of security, but now I took the helm once
more and pulled the noble little engine wide open, so that again we raced north
at terrific velocity. In the meantime Carthoris and Xodar with tools in hand
were puttering with the great rent in the bow in a hopeless endeavour to stem
the tide of escaping rays.
It was still dark when
we passed the northern boundary of the ice cap and the area of clouds. Below us
lay a typical Martian landscape. Rolling ochre sea bottom of long dead seas,
low surrounding hills, with here and there the grim and silent cities of the
dead past; great piles of mighty architecture tenanted only by age-old memories
of a once powerful race, and by the great white apes of Barsoom.
It was becoming more
and more difficult to maintain our little vessel in a horizontal position.
Lower and lower sagged the bow until it became necessary to stop the engine to
prevent our flight terminating in a swift dive to the ground.
As the sun rose and the
light of a new day swept away the darkness of night our craft gave a final
spasmodic plunge, turned half upon her side, and then with deck tilting at a
sickening angle swung in a slow circle, her bow dropping further below her
stern each moment.
To hand-rail and
stanchion we clung, and finally as we saw the end approaching, snapped the
buckles of our harness to the rings at her sides. In another moment the deck
reared at an angle of ninety degrees and we hung in our leather with feet
dangling a thousand yards above the ground.
I was swinging quite
close to the controlling devices, so I reached out to the lever that directed
the rays of repulsion. The boat responded to the touch, and very gently we began
to sink toward the ground.
It was fully half an
hour before we touched. Directly north of us rose a rather lofty range of
hills, toward which we decided to make our way, since they afforded greater
opportunity for concealment from the pursuers we were confident might stumble
in this direction.
An hour later found us
in the time-rounded gullies of the hills, amid the beautiful flowering plants
that abound in the arid waste places of Barsoom. There we found numbers of huge
milk-giving shrubs -- that strange plant which serves in great part as food and
drink for the wild hordes of green men. It was indeed a boon to us, for we all
were nearly famished.
Beneath a cluster of
these which afforded perfect concealment from wandering air scouts, we lay down
to sleep -- for me the first time in many hours. This was the beginning of my
fifth day upon Barsoom since I had found myself suddenly translated from my
cottage on the Hudson to Dor, the valley beautiful, the valley hideous. In all
this time I had slept but twice, though once the clock around within the
storehouse of the therns.
It was mid-afternoon
when I was awakened by some one seizing my hand and covering it with kisses.
With a start I opened my eyes to look into the beautiful face of Thuvia.
"My Prince! My
Prince!" she cried, in an ecstasy of happiness. "'Tis you whom I had
mourned as dead. My ancestors have been good to me; I have not lived in
vain."
The girl's voice awoke
Xodar and Carthoris. The boy gazed upon the woman in surprise, but she did not
seem to realize the presence of another than I. She would have thrown her arms
about my neck and smothered me with caresses, had I not gently but firmly
disengaged myself.
"Come, come,
Thuvia," I said soothingly; "you are overwrought by the danger and
hardships you have passed through. You forget yourself, as you forget that I am
the husband of the Princess of Helium."
"I forget nothing,
my Prince," she replied. "You have spoken no word of love to me, nor
do I expect that you ever shall; but nothing can prevent me loving you. I would
not take the place of Dejah Thoris. My greatest ambition is to serve you, my
Prince, for ever as your slave. No greater boon could I ask, no greater honour
could I crave, no greater happiness could I hope."
As I have before said,
I am no ladies' man, and I must admit that I seldom have felt so uncomfortable
and embarrassed as I did that moment. While I was quite familiar with the
Martian custom which allows female slaves to Martian men, whose high and
chivalrous honour is always ample protection for every woman in his household,
yet I had never myself chosen other than men as my body servants.
"And I ever return
to Helium, Thuvia," I said, "you shall go with me, but as an honoured
equal, and not as a slave. There you shall find plenty of handsome young nobles
who would face Issus herself to win a smile from you, and we shall have you
married in short order to one of the best of them. Forget your foolish
gratitude-begotten infatuation, which your innocence has mistaken for love. I
like your friendship better, Thuvia."
"You are my
master; it shall be as you say," she replied simply, but there was a note
of sadness in her voice.
"How came you
here, Thuvia?" I asked. "And where is Tars Tarkas?"
"The great Thark,
I fear, is dead," she replied sadly. "He was a mighty fighter, but a
multitude of green warriors of another horde than his overwhelmed him. The last
that I saw of him they were bearing him, wounded and bleeding, to the deserted
city from which they had sallied to attack us."
"You are not sure
that he is dead, then?" I asked. "And where is this city of which you
speak?"
"It is just beyond
this range of hills. The vessel in which you so nobly resigned a place that we
might find escape defied our small skill in navigation, with the result that we
drifted aimlessly about for two days. Then we decided to abandon the craft and
attempt to make our way on foot to the nearest waterway. Yesterday we crossed
these hills and came upon the dead city beyond. We had passed within its
streets and were walking toward the central portion, when at an intersecting
avenue we saw a body of green warriors approaching.
"Tars Tarkas was
in advance, and they saw him, but me they did not see. The Thark sprang back to
my side and forced me into an adjacent doorway, where he told me to remain in
hiding until I could escape, making my way to Helium if possible.
"'There will be no
escape for me now,' he said, 'for these be the Warhoon of the South. When they
have seen my metal it will be to the death.'
"Then he stepped
out to meet them. Ah, my Prince, such fighting! For an hour they swarmed about
him, until the Warhoon dead formed a hill where he had stood; but at last they
overwhelmed him, those behind pushing the foremost upon him until there
remained no space to swing his great sword. Then he stumbled and went down and
they rolled over him like a huge wave. When they carried him away toward the
heart of the city, he was dead, I think, for I did not see him move."
"Before we go
farther we must be sure," I said. "I cannot leave Tars Tarkas alive
among the Warhoons. To-night I shall enter the city and make sure."
"And I shall go
with you," spoke Carthoris.
"And I," said
Xodar.
"Neither one of
you shall go," I replied. "It is work that requires stealth and
strategy, not force. One man alone may succeed where more would invite
disaster. I shall go alone. If I need your help, I will return for you."
They did not like it,
but both were good soldiers, and it had been agreed that I should command. The
sun already was low, so that I did not have long to wait before the sudden
darkness of Barsoom engulfed us.
With a parting word of
instructions to Carthoris and Xodar, in case I should not return, I bade them
all farewell and set forth at a rapid dogtrot toward the city.
As I emerged from the
hills the nearer moon was winging its wild flight through the heavens, its
bright beams turning to burnished silver the barbaric splendour of the ancient
metropolis. The city had been built upon the gently rolling foothills that in
the dim and distant past had sloped down to meet the sea. It was due to this
fact that I had no difficulty in entering the streets unobserved.
The green hordes that
use these deserted cities seldom occupy more than a few squares about the
central plaza, and as they come and go always across the dead sea bottoms that
the cities face, it is usually a matter of comparative ease to enter from the
hillside.
Once within the
streets, I kept close in the dense shadows of the walls. At intersections I
halted a moment to make sure that none was in sight before I sprang quickly to
the shadows of the opposite side. Thus I made the journey to the vicinity of
the plaza without detection. As I approached the purlieus of the inhabited
portion of the city I was made aware of the proximity of the warriors' quarters
by the squealing and grunting of the thoats and zitidars corralled within the
hollow courtyards formed by the buildings surrounding each square.
These old familiar
sounds that are so distinctive of green Martian life sent a thrill of pleasure
surging through me. It was as one might feel on coming home after a long
absence. It was amid such sounds that I had first courted the incomparable
Dejah Thoris in the age-old marble halls of the dead city of Korad.
As I stood in the
shadows at the far corner of the first square which housed members of the
horde, I saw warriors emerging from several of the buildings. They all went in
the same direction, toward a great building which stood in the centre of the
plaza. My knowledge of green Martian customs convinced me that this was either
the quarters of the principal chieftain or contained the audience chamber
wherein the Jeddak met his jeds and lesser chieftains. In either event, it was
evident that something was afoot which might have a bearing on the recent
capture of Tars Tarkas.
To reach this building,
which I now felt it imperative that I do, I must needs traverse the entire
length of one square and cross a broad avenue and a portion of the plaza. From
the noises of the animals which came from every courtyard about me, I knew that
there were many people in the surrounding buildings -- probably several
communities of the great horde of the Warhoons of the South.
To pass undetected
among all these people was in itself a difficult task, but if I was to find and
rescue the great Thark I must expect even more formidable obstacles before
success could be mine. I had entered the city from the south and now stood on
the corner of the avenue through which I had passed and the first intersecting
avenue south of the plaza. The buildings upon the south side of this square did
not appear to be inhabited, as I could see no lights, and so I decided to gain
the inner courtyard through one of them.
Nothing occurred to
interrupt my progress through the deserted pile I chose, and I came into the inner
court close to the rear walls of the east buildings without detection. Within
the court a great herd of thoats and zitidars moved restlessly about, cropping
the moss-like ochre vegetation which overgrows practically the entire
uncultivated area of Mars. What breeze there was came from the north-west, so
there was little danger that the beasts would scent me. Had they, their
squealing and grunting would have grown to such a volume as to attract the
attention of the warriors within the buildings.
Close to the east wall,
beneath the overhanging balconies of the second floors, I crept in dense
shadows the full length of the courtyard, until I came to the buildings at the
north end. These were lighted for about three floors up, but above the third
floor all was dark.
To pass through the
lighted rooms was, of course, out of the question, since they swarmed with
green Martian men and women. My only path lay through the upper floors, and to
gain these it was necessary to scale the face of the wall. The reaching of the
balcony of the second floor was a matter of easy accomplishment -- an agile
leap gave my hands a grasp upon the stone hand-rail above. In another instant I
had drawn myself upon the balcony.
Here through the open
windows I saw the green folk squatting upon their sleeping silks and furs,
grunting an occasional monosyllable, which, in connection with their wondrous
telepathic powers, is ample for their conversational requirements. As I drew
closer to listen to their words a warrior entered the room from the hall
beyond.
"Come, Tan
Gama," he cried, "we are to take the Thark before Kab Kadja. Bring
another with you."
The warrior addressed
arose and, beckoning to a fellow squatting near, the three turned and left the
apartment.
If I could but follow
them the chance might come to free Tars Tarkas at once. At least I would learn
the location of his prison.
At my right was a door
leading from the balcony into the building. It was at the end of an unlighted
hall, and on the impulse of the moment I stepped within. The hall was broad and
led straight through to the front of the building. On either side were the
doorways of the various apartments which lined it.
I had no more than
entered the corridor than I saw the three warriors at the other end -- those
whom I had just seen leaving the apartment. Then a turn to the right took them
from my sight again. Quickly I hastened along the hallway in pursuit. My gait
was reckless, but I felt that Fate had been kind indeed to throw such an
opportunity within my grasp, and I could not afford to allow it to elude me
now.
At the far end of the
corridor I found a spiral stairway leading to the floors above and below. The
three had evidently left the floor by this avenue. That they had gone down and
not up I was sure from my knowledge of these ancient buildings and the methods
of the Warhoons.
I myself had once been
a prisoner of the cruel hordes of northern Warhoon, and the memory of the
underground dungeon in which I lay still is vivid in my memory. And so I felt
certain that Tars Tarkas lay in the dark pits beneath some nearby building, and
that in that direction I should find the trail of the three warriors leading to
his cell.
Nor was I wrong. At the
bottom of the runway, or rather at the landing on the floor below, I saw that
the shaft descended into the pits beneath, and as I glanced down the flickering
light of a torch revealed the presence of the three I was trailing.
Down they went toward
the pits beneath the structure, and at a safe distance behind I followed the
flicker of their torch. The way led through a maze of tortuous corridors,
unlighted save for the wavering light they carried. We had gone perhaps a
hundred yards when the party turned abruptly through a doorway at their right.
I hastened on as rapidly as I dared through the darkness until I reached the
point at which they had left the corridor. There, through an open door, I saw
them removing the chains that secured the great Thark, Tars Tarkas, to the
wall.
Hustling him roughly
between them, they came immediately from the chamber, so quickly in fact that I
was near to being apprehended. But I managed to run along the corridor in the
direction I had been going in my pursuit of them far enough to be without the
radius of their meagre light as they emerged from the cell.
I had naturally assumed
that they would return with Tars Tarkas the same way that they had come, which
would have carried them away from me; but, to my chagrin, they wheeled directly
in my direction as they left the room. There was nothing for me but to hasten
on in advance and keep out of the light of their torch. I dared not attempt to
halt in the darkness of any of the many intersecting corridors, for I knew
nothing of the direction they might take. Chance was as likely as not to carry
me into the very corridor they might choose to enter.
The sensation of moving
rapidly through these dark passages was far from reassuring. I knew not at what
moment I might plunge headlong into some terrible pit or meet with some of the
ghoulish creatures that inhabit these lower worlds beneath the dead cities of
dying Mars. There filtered to me a faint radiance from the torch of the men
behind -- just enough to permit me to trace the direction of the winding
passageways directly before me, and so keep me from dashing myself against the
walls at the turns.
Presently I came to a
place where five corridors diverged from a common point. I had hastened along
one of them for some little distance when suddenly the faint light of the torch
disappeared from behind me. I paused to listen for sounds of the party behind
me, but the silence was as utter as the silence of the tomb.
Quickly I realized that
the warriors had taken one of the other corridors with their prisoner, and so I
hastened back with a feeling of considerable relief to take up a much safer and
more desirable position behind them. It was much slower work returning,
however, than it had been coming, for now the darkness was as utter as the
silence.
It was necessary to
feel every foot of the way back with my hand against the side wall, that I
might not pass the spot where the five roads radiated. After what seemed an
eternity to me, I reached the place and recognized it by groping across the
entrances to the several corridors until I had counted five of them. In not
one, however, showed the faintest sign of light.
I listened intently,
but the naked feet of the green men sent back no guiding echoes, though
presently I thought I detected the clank of side arms in the far distance of
the middle corridor. Up this, then, I hastened, searching for the light, and
stopping to listen occasionally for a repetition of the sound; but soon I was
forced to admit that I must have been following a blind lead, as only darkness
and silence rewarded my efforts.
Again I retraced my
steps toward the parting of the ways, when to my surprise I came upon the
entrance to three diverging corridors, any one of which I might have traversed
in my hasty dash after the false clue I had been following. Here was a pretty
fix, indeed! Once back at the point where the five passageways met, I might
wait with some assurance for the return of the warriors with Tars Tarkas. My
knowledge of their customs lent colour to the belief that he was but being
escorted to the audience chamber to have sentence passed upon him. I had not
the slightest doubt but that they would preserve so doughty a warrior as the
great Thark for the rare sport he would furnish at the Great Games.
But unless I could find
my way back to that point the chances were most excellent that I would wander
for days through the awful blackness, until, overcome by thirst and hunger, I
lay down to die, or -- What was that!
A faint shuffling
sounded behind me, and as I cast a hasty glance over my shoulder my blood froze
in my veins for the thing I saw there. It was not so much fear of the present
danger as it was the horrifying memories it recalled of that time I near went
mad over the corpse of the man I had killed in the dungeons of the Warhoons,
when blazing eyes came out of the dark recesses and dragged the thing that had
been a man from my clutches and I heard it scraping over the stone of my prison
as they bore it away to their terrible feast.
And now in these black
pits of the other Warhoons I looked into those same fiery eyes, blazing at me
through the terrible darkness, revealing no sign of the beast behind them. I
think that the most fearsome attribute of these awesome creatures is their
silence and the fact that one never sees them -- nothing but those baleful eyes
glaring unblinkingly out of the dark void behind.
Grasping my long-sword
tightly in my hand, I backed slowly along the corridor away from the thing that
watched me, but ever as I retreated the eyes advanced, nor was there any sound,
not even the sound of breathing, except the occasional shuffling sound as of
the dragging of a dead limb, that had first attracted my attention.
On and on I went, but I
could not escape my sinister pursuer. Suddenly I heard the shuffling noise at
my right, and, looking, saw another pair of eyes, evidently approaching from an
intersecting corridor. As I started to renew my slow retreat I heard the noise
repeated behind me, and then before I could turn I heard it again at my left.
The things were all
about me. They had me surrounded at the intersection of two corridors. Retreat
was cut off in all directions, unless I chose to charge one of the beasts. Even
then I had no doubt but that the others would hurl themselves upon my back. I
could not even guess the size or nature of the weird creatures. That they were
of goodly proportions I guessed from the fact that the eyes were on a level
with my own.
Why is it that darkness
so magnifies our dangers? By day I would have charged the great banth itself,
had I thought it necessary, but hemmed in by the darkness of these silent pits
I hesitated before a pair of eyes.
Soon I saw that the
matter shortly would be taken entirely from my hands, for the eyes at my right
were moving slowly nearer me, as were those at my left and those behind and
before me. Gradually they were closing in upon me -- but still that awful
stealthy silence!
For what seemed hours
the eyes approached gradually closer and closer, until I felt that I should go
mad for the horror of it. I had been constantly turning this way and that to
prevent any sudden rush from behind, until I was fairly worn out. At length I
could endure it no longer, and, taking a fresh grasp upon my long-sword, I
turned suddenly and charged down upon one of my tormentors.
As I was almost upon it
the thing retreated before me, but a sound from behind caused me to wheel in
time to see three pairs of eyes rushing at me from the rear. With a cry of rage
I turned to meet the cowardly beasts, but as I advanced they retreated as had
their fellow. Another glance over my shoulder discovered the first eyes
sneaking on me again. And again I charged, only to see the eyes retreat before
me and hear the muffled rush of the three at my back.
Thus we continued, the
eyes always a little closer in the end than they had been before, until I
thought that I should go mad with the terrible strain of the ordeal. That they
were waiting to spring upon my back seemed evident, and that it would not be
long before they succeeded was equally apparent, for I could not endure the
wear of this repeated charge and countercharge indefinitely. In fact, I could
feel myself weakening from the mental and physical strain I had been
undergoing.
At that moment I caught
another glimpse from the corner of my eye of the single pair of eyes at my back
making a sudden rush upon me. I turned to meet the charge; there was a quick
rush of the three from the other direction; but I determined to pursue the
single pair until I should have at least settled my account with one of the
beasts and thus be relieved of the strain of meeting attacks from both
directions.
There was no sound in
the corridor, only that of my own breathing, yet I knew that those three
uncanny creatures were almost upon me. The eyes in front were not retreating so
rapidly now; I was almost within sword reach of them. I raised my sword arm to
deal the blow that should free me, and then I felt a heavy body upon my back. A
cold, moist, slimy something fastened itself upon my throat. I stumbled and
went down.
I COULD NOT have been
unconscious more than a few seconds, and yet I know that I was unconscious, for
the next thing I realized was that a growing radiance was illuminating the
corridor about me and the eyes were gone.
I was unharmed except
for a slight bruise upon my forehead where it had struck the stone flagging as
I fell.
I sprang to my feet to
ascertain the cause of the light. It came from a torch in the hand of one of a
party of four green warriors, who were coming rapidly down the corridor toward
me. They had not yet seen me, and so I lost no time in slipping into the first
intersecting corridor that I could find. This time, however, I did not advance
so far away from the main corridor as on the other occasion that had resulted
in my losing Tars Tarkas and his guards.
The party came rapidly
toward the opening of the passageway in which I crouched against the wall. As
they passed by I breathed a sigh of relief. I had not been discovered, and,
best of all, the party was the same that I had followed into the pits. It
consisted of Tars Tarkas and his three guards.
I fell in behind them
and soon we were at the cell in which the great Thark had been chained. Two of
the warriors remained without while the man with the keys entered with the
Thark to fasten his irons upon him once more. The two outside started to stroll
slowly in the direction of the spiral runway which led to the floors above, and
in a moment were lost to view beyond a turn in the corridor.
The torch had been
stuck in a socket beside the door, so that its rays illuminated both the
corridor and the cell at the same time. As I saw the two warriors disappear I
approached the entrance to the cell, with a well-defined plan already
formulated.
While I disliked the
thought of carrying out the thing that I had decided upon, there seemed no
alternative if Tars Tarkas and I were to go back together to my little camp in
the hills.
Keeping near the wall,
I came quite close to the door to Tars Tarkas' cell, and there I stood with my
longsword above my head, grasped with both hands, that I might bring it down in
one quick cut upon the skull of the jailer as he emerged.
I dislike to dwell upon
what followed after I heard the footsteps of the man as he approached the
doorway. It is enough that within another minute or two, Tars Tarkas, wearing
the metal of a Warhoon chief, was hurrying down the corridor toward the spiral
runway, bearing the Warhoon's torch to light his way. A dozen paces behind him
followed John Carter, Prince of Helium.
The two companions of
the man who lay now beside the door of the cell that had been Tars Tarkas' had
just started to ascend the runway as the Thark came in view.
"Why so long, Tan
Gama?" cried one of the men.
"I had trouble
with a lock," replied Tars Tarkas. "And now I find that I have left
my short-sword in the Thark's cell. Go you on, I'll return and fetch it."
"As you will, Tan
Gama," replied he who had before spoken. "We shall see you above
directly."
"Yes," replied
Tars Tarkas, and turned as though to retrace his steps to the cell, but he only
waited until the two had disappeared at the floor above. Then I joined him, we
extinguished the torch, and together we crept toward the spiral incline that
led to the upper floors of the building.
At the first floor we
found that the hallway ran but half-way through, necessitating the crossing of
a rear room full of green folk, ere we could reach the inner courtyard, so
there was but one thing left for us to do, and that was to gain the second
floor and the hallway through which I had traversed the length of the building.
Cautiously we ascended.
We could hear the sounds of conversation coming from the room above, but the
hall still was unlighted, nor was any one in sight as we gained the top of the
runway. Together we threaded the long hall and reached the balcony overlooking
the courtyard, without being detected.
At our right was the
window letting into the room in which I had seen Tan Gama and the other
warriors as they started to Tars Tarkas' cell earlier in the evening. His
companions had returned here, and we now overheard a portion of their
conversation.
"What can be
detaining Tan Gama?" asked one.
"He certainly
could not be all this time fetching his short-sword from the Thark's
cell," spoke another.
"His
short-sword?" asked a woman. "What mean you?"
"Tan Gama left his
short-sword in the Thark's cell," explained the first speaker, "and
left us at the runway, to return and get it."
"Tan Gama wore no
short-sword this night," said the woman. "It was broken in to-day's
battle with the Thark, and Tan Gama gave it to me to repair. See, I have it
here," and as she spoke she drew Tan Gama's short-sword from beneath her
sleeping silks and furs.
The warriors sprang to
their feet.
"There is
something amiss here," cried one.
"'Tis even what I
myself thought when Tan Gama left us at the runway," said another.
"Methought then that his voice sounded strangely."
"Come! let us
hasten to the pits."
We waited to hear no
more. Slinging my harness into a long single strap, I lowered Tars Tarkas to
the courtyard beneath, and an instant later dropped to his side.
We had spoken scarcely
a dozen words since I had felled Tan Gama at the cell door and seen in the
torch's light the expression of utter bewilderment upon the great Thark's face.
"By this
time," he had said, "I should have learned to wonder at nothing which
John Carter accomplishes." That was all. He did not need to tell me that
he appreciated the friendship which had prompted me to risk my life to rescue
him, nor did he need to say that he was glad to see me.
This fierce green
warrior had been the first to greet me that day, now twenty years gone, which
had witnessed my first advent upon Mars. He had met me with levelled spear and
cruel hatred in his heart as he charged down upon me, bending low at the side
of his mighty thoat as I stood beside the incubator of his horde upon the dead
sea bottom beyond Korad. And now among the inhabitants of two worlds I counted
none a better friend than Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of the Tharks.
As we reached the
courtyard we stood in the shadows beneath the balcony for a moment to discuss
our plans.
"There be five now
in the party, Tars Tarkas," I said; "Thuvia, Xodar, Carthoris, and
ourselves. We shall need five thoats to bear us."
"Carthoris!"
he cried. "Your son?"
"Yes. I found him
in the prison of Shador, on the Sea of Omean, in the land of the First
Born."
"I know not any of
these places, John Carter. Be they upon Barsoom?"
"Upon and below,
my friend; but wait until we shall have made good our escape, and you shall
hear the strangest narrative that ever a Barsoomian of the outer world gave ear
to. Now we must steal our thoats and be well away to the north before these
fellows discover how we have tricked them."
In safety we reached
the great gates at the far end of the courtyard, through which it was necessary
to take our thoats to the avenue beyond. It is no easy matter to handle five of
these great, fierce beasts, which by nature are as wild and ferocious as their
masters and held in subjection by cruelty and brute force alone.
As we approached them
they sniffed our unfamiliar scent and with squeals of rage circled about us.
Their long, massive necks upreared raised their great, gaping mouths high above
our heads. They are fearsome appearing brutes at best, but when they are
aroused they are fully as dangerous as they look. The thoat stands a good ten
feet at the shoulder. His hide is sleek and hairless, and of a dark slate
colour on back and sides, shading down his eight legs to a vivid yellow at the
huge, padded, nailless feet; the belly is pure white. A broad, flat tail,
larger at the tip than at the root, completes the picture of this ferocious
green Martian mount -- a fit war steed for these warlike people.
As the thoats are
guided by telepathic means alone, there is no need for rein or bridle, and so
our object now was to find two that would obey our unspoken commands. As they
charged about us we succeeded in mastering them sufficiently to prevent any
concerted attack upon us, but the din of their squealing was certain to bring
investigating warriors into the courtyard were it to continue much longer.
At length I was
successful in reaching the side of one great brute, and ere he knew what I was
about I was firmly seated astride his glossy back. A moment later Tars Tarkas
had caught and mounted another, and then between us we herded three or four
more toward the great gates.
Tars Tarkas rode ahead
and, leaning down to the latch, threw the barriers open, while I held the loose
thoats from breaking back to the herd. Then together we rode through into the
avenue with our stolen mounts and, without waiting to close the gates, hurried
off toward the southern boundary of the city.
Thus far our escape had
been little short of marvellous, nor did our good fortune desert us, for we
passed the outer purlieus of the dead city and came to our camp without hearing
even the faintest sound of pursuit.
Here a low whistle, the
prearranged signal, apprised the balance of our party that I was returning, and
we were met by the three with every manifestation of enthusiastic rejoicing.
But little time was
wasted in narration of our adventure. Tars Tarkas and Carthoris exchanged the
dignified and formal greetings common upon Barsoom, but I could tell
intuitively that the Thark loved my boy and that Carthoris reciprocated his
affection.
Xodar and the green
Jeddak were formally presented to each other. Then Thuvia was lifted to the
least fractious thoat, Xodar and Carthoris mounted two others, and we set out
at a rapid pace toward the east. At the far extremity of the city we circled
toward the north, and under the glorious rays of the two moons we sped noiselessly
across the dead sea bottom, away from the Warhoons and the First Born, but to
what new dangers and adventures we knew not.
Toward noon of the
following day we halted to rest our mounts and ourselves. The beasts we
hobbled, that they might move slowly about cropping the ochre moss-like
vegetation which constitutes both food and drink for them on the march. Thuvia
volunteered to remain on watch while the balance of the party slept for an
hour.
It seemed to me that I
had but closed my eyes when I felt her hand upon my shoulder and heard her soft
voice warning me of a new danger.
"Arise, O
Prince," she whispered. "There be that behind us which has the
appearance of a great body of pursuers."
The girl stood pointing
in the direction from whence we had come, and as I arose and looked, I, too,
thought that I could detect a thin dark line on the far horizon. I awoke the
others. Tars Tarkas, whose giant stature towered high above the rest of us, could
see the farthest.
"It is a great
body of mounted men," he said, "and they are travelling at high
speed."
There was no time to be
lost. We sprang to our hobbled thoats, freed them, and mounted. Then we turned
our faces once more toward the north and took our flight again at the highest
speed of our slowest beast.
For the balance of the
day and all the following night we raced across that ochre wilderness with the
pursuers at our back ever gaining upon us. Slowly but surely they were
lessening the distance between us. Just before dark they had been close enough
for us to plainly distinguish that they were green Martians, and all during the
long night we distinctly heard the clanking of their accoutrements behind us.
As the sun rose on the
second day of our flight it disclosed the pursuing horde not a half-mile in our
rear. As they saw us a fiendish shout of triumph rose from their ranks.
Several miles in
advance lay a range of hills -- the farther shore of the dead sea we had been
crossing. Could we but reach these hills our chances of escape would be greatly
enhanced, but Thuvia's mount, although carrying the lightest burden, already
was showing signs of exhaustion. I was riding beside her when suddenly her
animal staggered and lurched against mine. I saw that he was going down, but
ere he fell I snatched the girl from his back and swung her to a place upon my
own thoat, behind me, where she clung with her arms about me.
This double burden soon
proved too much for my already overtaxed beast, and thus our speed was terribly
diminished, for the others would proceed no faster than the slowest of us could
go. In that little party there was not one who would desert another; yet we
were of different countries, different colours, different races, different
religions -- and one of us was of a different world.
We were quite close to
the hills, but the Warhoons were gaining so rapidly that we had given up all
hope of reaching them in time. Thuvia and I were in the rear, for our beast was
lagging more and more. Suddenly I felt the girl's warm lips press a kiss upon
my shoulder. "For thy sake, O my Prince," she murmured. Then her arms
slipped from about my waist and she was gone.
I turned and saw that
she had deliberately slipped to the ground in the very path of the cruel demons
who pursued us, thinking that by lightening the burden of my mount it might
thus be enabled to bear me to the safety of the hills. Poor child! She should
have known John Carter better than that.
Turning my thoat, I
urged him after her, hoping to reach her side and bear her on again in our
hopeless flight. Carthoris must have glanced behind him at about the same time
and taken in the situation, for by the time I had reached Thuvia's side he was
there also, and, springing from his mount, he threw her upon its back and,
turning the animal's head toward the hills, gave the beast a sharp crack across
the rump with the flat of his sword. Then he attempted to do the same with
mine.
The brave boy's act of
chivalrous self-sacrifice filled me with pride, nor did I care that it had
wrested from us our last frail chance for escape. The Warhoons were now close
upon us. Tars Tarkas and Xodar had discovered our absence and were charging
rapidly to our support. Everything pointed toward a splendid ending of my
second journey to Barsoom. I hated to go out without having seen my divine
Princess, and held her in my arms once again; but if it were not writ upon the
book of Fate that such was to be, then would I take the most that was coming to
me, and in these last few moments that were to be vouchsafed me before I passed
over into that unguessed future I could at least give such an account of myself
in my chosen vocation as would leave the Warhoons of the South food for
discourse for the next twenty generations.
As Carthoris was not
mounted, I slipped from the back of my own mount and took my place at his side
to meet the charge of the howling devils bearing down upon us. A moment later
Tars Tarkas and Xodar ranged themselves on either hand, turning their thoats
loose that we might all be on an equal footing.
The Warhoons were
perhaps a hundred yards from us when a loud explosion sounded from above and
behind us, and almost at the same instant a shell burst in their advancing
ranks. At once all was confusion. A hundred warriors toppled to the ground.
Riderless thoats plunged hither and thither among the dead and dying.
Dismounted warriors were trampled underfoot in the stampede which followed. All
semblance of order had left the ranks of the green men, and as they looked far
above our heads to trace the origin of this unexpected attack, disorder turned
to retreat and retreat to a wild panic. In another moment they were racing as
madly away from us as they had before been charging down upon us.
We turned to look in
the direction from whence the first report had come, and there we saw, just
clearing the tops of the nearer hills, a great battleship swinging majestically
through the air. Her bow gun spoke again even as we looked, and another shell
burst among the fleeing Warhoons.
As she drew nearer I
could not repress a wild cry of elation, for upon her bows I saw the device of
Helium.
AS CARTHORIS, Xodar,
Tars Tarkas, and I stood gazing at the magnificent vessel which meant so much
to all of us, we saw a second and then a third top the summit of the hills and
glide gracefully after their sister.
Now a score of one-man
air scouts were launching from the upper decks of the nearer vessel, and in a
moment more were speeding in long, swift dives to the ground about us.
In another instant we
were surrounded by armed sailors, and an officer had stepped forward to address
us, when his eyes fell upon Carthoris. With an exclamation of surprised
pleasure he sprang forward, and, placing his hands upon the boy's shoulder,
called him by name.
"Carthoris, my
Prince," he cried, "Kaor! Kaor! Hor Vastus greets the son of Dejah
Thoris, Princess of Helium, and of her husband, John Carter. Where have you
been, O my Prince? All Helium has been plunged in sorrow. Terrible have been
the calamities that have befallen your great-grandsire's mighty nation since
the fatal day that saw you leave our midst."
"Grieve not, my
good Hor Vastus," cried Carthoris, "since I bring not back myself
alone to cheer my mother's heart and the hearts of my beloved people, but also
one whom all Barsoom loved best -- her greatest warrior and her saviour -- John
Carter, Prince of Helium!"
Hor Vastus turned in
the direction indicated by Carthoris, and as his eyes fell upon me he was like
to have collapsed from sheer surprise.
"John
Carter!" he exclaimed, and then a sudden troubled look came into his eyes.
"My Prince," he started, "where hast thou -- " and then he
stopped, but I knew the question that his lips dared not frame. The loyal
fellow would not be the one to force from mine a confession of the terrible
truth that I had returned from the bosom of the Iss, the River of Mystery, back
from the shore of the Lost Sea of Korus, and the Valley Dor.
"Ah, my
Prince," he continued, as though no thought had interrupted his greeting,
"that you are back is sufficient, and let Hor Vastus' sword have the high
honour of being first at thy feet." With these words the noble fellow
unbuckled his scabbard and flung his sword upon the ground before me.
Could you know the
customs and the character of red Martians you would appreciate the depth of
meaning that that simple act conveyed to me and to all about us who witnessed
it. The thing was equivalent to saying, "My sword, my body, my life, my
soul are yours to do with as you wish. Until death and after death I look to
you alone for authority for my every act. Be you right or wrong, your word
shall be my only truth. Whoso raises his hand against you must answer to my
sword."
It is the oath of fealty
that men occasionally pay to a Jeddak whose high character and chivalrous acts
have inspired the enthusiastic love of his followers. Never had I known this
high tribute paid to a lesser mortal. There was but one response possible. I
stooped and lifted the sword from the ground, raised the hilt to my lips, and
then, stepping to Hor Vastus, I buckled the weapon upon him with my own hands.
"Hor Vastus,"
I said, placing my hand upon his shoulder, "you know best the promptings
of your own heart. That I shall need your sword I have little doubt, but accept
from John Carter upon his sacred honour the assurance that he will never call
upon you to draw this sword other than in the cause of truth, justice, and
righteousness."
"That I knew, my
Prince," he replied, "ere ever I threw my beloved blade at thy
feet."
As we spoke other
fliers came and went between the ground and the battleship, and presently a
larger boat was launched from above, one capable of carrying a dozen persons,
perhaps, and dropped lightly near us. As she touched, an officer sprang from
her deck to the ground, and, advancing to Hor Vastus, saluted.
"Kantos Kan
desires that this party whom we have rescued be brought immediately to the deck
of the Xavarian," he said.
As we approached the
little craft I looked about for the members of my party and for the first time
noticed that Thuvia was not among them. Questioning elicited the fact that none
had seen her since Carthoris had sent her thoat galloping madly toward the
hills, in the hope of carrying her out of harm's way.
Immediately Hor Vastus
dispatched a dozen air scouts in as many directions to search for her. It could
not be possible that she had gone far since we had last seen her. We others
stepped to the deck of the craft that had been sent to fetch us, and a moment
later were upon the Xavarian.
The first man to greet
me was Kantos Kan himself. My old friend had won to the highest place in the
navy of Helium, but he was still to me the same brave comrade who had shared
with me the privations of a Warhoon dungeon, the terrible atrocities of the
Great Games, and later the dangers of our search for Dejah Thoris within the
hostile city of Zodanga.
Then I had been an
unknown wanderer upon a strange planet, and he a simple padwar in the navy of
Helium. To-day he commanded all Helium's great terrors of the skies, and I was
a Prince of the House of Tardos Mors, Jeddak of Helium.
He did not ask me where
I had been. Like Hor Vastus, he too dreaded the truth and would not be the one
to wrest a statement from me. That it must come some time he well knew, but
until it came he seemed satisfied to but know that I was with him once more. He
greeted Carthoris and Tars Tarkas with the keenest delight, but he asked neither
where he had been. He could scarcely keep his hands off the boy.
"You do not know,
John Carter," he said to me, "how we of Helium love this son of
yours. It is as though all the great love we bore his noble father and his poor
mother had been centred in him. When it became known that he was lost, ten
million people wept."
"What mean you,
Kantos Kan," I whispered, "by 'his poor mother'?" for the words
had seemed to carry a sinister meaning which I could not fathom.
He drew me to one side.
"For a year,"
he said, "Ever since Carthoris disappeared, Dejah Thoris has grieved and
mourned for her lost boy. The blow of years ago, when you did not return from
the atmosphere plant, was lessened to some extent by the duties of motherhood,
for your son broke his white shell that very night."
"That she suffered
terribly then, all Helium knew, for did not all Helium suffer with her the loss
of her lord! But with the boy gone there was nothing left, and after expedition
upon expedition returned with the same hopeless tale of no clue as to his
whereabouts, our beloved Princess drooped lower and lower, until all who saw
her felt that it could be but a matter of days ere she went to join her loved
ones within the precincts of the Valley Dor.
"As a last resort,
Mors Kajak, her father, and Tardos Mors, her grandfather, took command of two
mighty expeditions, and a month ago sailed away to explore every inch of ground
in the northern hemisphere of Barsoom. For two weeks no word has come back from
them, but rumours were rife that they had met with a terrible disaster and that
all were dead.
"About this time
Zat Arras renewed his importunities for her hand in marriage. He has been for
ever after her since you disappeared. She hated him and feared him, but with
both her father and grandfather gone, Zat Arras was very powerful, for he is
still Jed of Zodanga, to which position, you will remember, Tardos Mors
appointed him after you had refused the honour.
"He had a secret
audience with her six days ago. What took place none knows, but the next day
Dejah Thoris had disappeared, and with her had gone a dozen of her household
guard and body servants, including Sola the green woman -- Tars Tarkas'
daughter, you recall. No word left they of their intentions, but it is always
thus with those who go upon the voluntary pilgrimage from which none returns.
We cannot think aught than that Dejah Thoris has sought the icy bosom of Iss,
and that her devoted servants have chosen to accompany her.
"Zat Arras was at
Helium when she disappeared. He commands this fleet which has been searching
for her since. No trace of her have we found, and I fear that it be a futile
quest."
While we talked, Hor
Vastus' fliers were returning to the Xavarian. Not one, however, had discovered
a trace of Thuvia. I was much depressed over the news of Dejah Thoris'
disappearance, and now there was added the further burden of apprehension
concerning the fate of this girl whom I believed to be the daughter of some
proud Barsoomian house, and it had been my intention to make every effort to
return her to her people.
I was about to ask
Kantos Kan to prosecute a further search for her when a flier from the flagship
of the fleet arrived at the Xavarian with an officer bearing a message to
Kantos Kan from Arras.
My friend read the
dispatch and then turned to me.
"Zat Arras
commands me to bring our 'prisoners' before him. There is naught else to do. He
is supreme in Helium, yet it would be far more in keeping with chivalry and
good taste were he to come hither and greet the saviour of Barsoom with the
honours that are his due."
"You know full
well, my friend," I said, smiling, "that Zat Arras has good cause to
hate me. Nothing would please him better than to humiliate me and then to kill
me. Now that he has so excellent an excuse, let us go and see if he has the
courage to take advantage of it."
Summoning Carthoris,
Tars Tarkas, and Xodar, we entered the small flier with Kantos Kan and Zat
Arras' officer, and in a moment were stepping to the deck of Zat Arras'
flagship.
As we approached the
Jed of Zodanga no sign of greeting or recognition crossed his face; not even to
Carthoris did he vouchsafe a friendly word. His attitude was cold, haughty, and
uncompromising.
"Kaor, Zat
Arras," I said in greeting, but he did not respond.
"Why were these
prisoners not disarmed?" he asked to Kantos Kan.
"They are not
prisoners, Zat Arras," replied the officer.
"Two of them are
of Helium's noblest family. Tars Tarkas, Jeddak of Thark, is Tardos Mors' best
beloved ally. The other is a friend and companion of the Prince of Helium --
that is enough for me to know."
"It is not enough
for me, however," retorted Zat Arras. "More must I hear from those
who have taken the pilgrimage than their names. Where have you been, John
Carter?"
"I have just come
from the Valley Dor and the Land of the First Born, Zat Arras," I replied.
"Ah!" he
exclaimed in evident pleasure, "you do not deny it, then? You have
returned from the bosom of Iss?"
"I have come back
from a land of false hope, from a valley of torture and death; with my
companions I have escaped from the hideous clutches of lying fiends. I have
come back to the Barsoom that I saved from a painless death to again save her,
but this time from death in its most frightful form."
"Cease,
blasphemer!" cried Zat Arras. "Hope not to save thy cowardly carcass
by inventing horrid lies to -- " But he got no further. One does not call
John Carter "coward" and "liar" thus lightly, and Zat Arras
should have known it. Before a hand could be raised to stop me, I was at his
side and one hand grasped his throat.
"Come I from
heaven or hell, Zat Arras, you will find me still the same John Carter that I
have always been; nor did ever man call me such names and live -- without
apologizing." And with that I commenced to bend him back across my knee
and tighten my grip upon his throat.
"Seize him!"
cried Zat Arras, and a dozen officers sprang forward to assist him.
Kantos Kan came close
and whispered to me.
"Desist, I beg of
you. It will but involve us all, for I cannot see these men lay hands upon you
without aiding you. My officers and men will join me and we shall have a mutiny
then that may lead to the revolution. For the sake of Tardos Mors and Helium,
desist."
At his words I released
Zat Arras and, turning my back upon him, walked toward the ship's rail.
"Come, Kantos
Kan," I said, "the Prince of Helium would return to the
Xavarian."
None interfered. Zat
Arras stood white and trembling amidst his officers. Some there were who looked
upon him with scorn and drew toward me, while one, a man long in the service
and confidence of Tardos Mors, spoke to me in a low tone as I passed him.
"You may count my
metal among your fighting-men, John Carter," he said.
I thanked him and passed
on. In silence we embarked, and shortly after stepped once more upon the deck
of the Xavarian. Fifteen minutes later we received orders from the flagship to
proceed toward Helium.
Our journey thither was
uneventful. Carthoris and I were wrapped in the gloomiest of thoughts. Kantos
Kan was sombre in contemplation of the further calamity that might fall upon
Helium should Zat Arras attempt to follow the age-old precedent that allotted a
terrible death to fugitives from the Valley Dor. Tars Tarkas grieved for the
loss of his daughter. Xodar alone was care-free -- a fugitive and outlaw, he
could be no worse off in Helium than elsewhere.
"Let us hope that
we may at least go out with good red blood upon our blades," he said. It
was a simple wish and one most likely to be gratified.
Among the officers of
the Xavarian I thought I could discern division into factions ere we had
reached Helium. There were those who gathered about Carthoris and myself
whenever the opportunity presented, while about an equal number held aloof from
us. They offered us only the most courteous treatment, but were evidently bound
by their superstitious belief in the doctrine of Dor and Iss and Korus. I could
not blame them, for I knew how strong a hold a creed, however ridiculous it may
be, may gain upon an otherwise intelligent people.
By returning from Dor
we had committed a sacrilege; by recounting our adventures there, and stating
the facts as they existed we had outraged the religion of their fathers. We
were blasphemers -- lying heretics. Even those who still clung to us from
personal love and loyalty I think did so in the face of the fact that at heart
they questioned our veracity -- it is very hard to accept a new religion for an
old, no matter how alluring the promises of the new may be; but to reject the
old as a tissue of falsehoods without being offered anything in its stead is
indeed a most difficult thing to ask of any people.
Kantos Kan would not
talk of our experiences among the therns and the First Born.
"It is enough,"
he said, "that I jeopardize my life here and hereafter by countenancing
you at all -- do not ask me to add still further to my sins by listening to
what I have always been taught was the rankest heresy."
I knew that sooner or
later the time must come when our friends and enemies would be forced to
declare themselves openly. When we reached Helium there must be an accounting,
and if Tardos Mors had not returned I feared that the enmity of Zat Arras might
weigh heavily against us, for he represented the government of Helium. To take
sides against him were equivalent to treason. The majority of the troops would
doubtless follow the lead of their officers, and I knew that many of the
highest and most powerful men of both land and air forces would cleave to John
Carter in the face of god, man, or devil.
On the other hand, the
majority of the populace unquestionably would demand that we pay the penalty of
our sacrilege. The outlook seemed dark from whatever angle I viewed it, but my
mind was so torn with anguish at the thought of Dejah Thoris that I realize now
that I gave the terrible question of Helium's plight but scant attention at
that time.
There was always before
me, day and night, a horrible nightmare of the frightful scenes through which I
knew my Princess might even then be passing -- the horrid plant men -- the
ferocious white apes. At times I would cover my face with my hands in a vain
effort to shut out the fearful thing from my mind.
It was in the forenoon
that we arrived above the mile-high scarlet tower which marks greater Helium
from her twin city. As we descended in great circles toward the navy docks a
mighty multitude could be seen surging in the streets beneath. Helium had been
notified by radio-aerogram of our approach.
From the deck of the
Xavarian we four, Carthoris, Tars Tarkas, Xodar, and I, were transferred to a
lesser flier to be transported to quarters within the Temple of Reward. It is
here that Martian justice is meted to benefactor and malefactor. Here the hero
is decorated. Here the felon is condemned. We were taken into the temple from
the landing stage upon the roof, so that we did not pass among the people at
all, as is customary. Always before I had seen prisoners of note, or returned
wanderers of eminence, paraded from the Gate of Jeddaks to the Temple of Reward
up the broad Avenue of Ancestors through dense crowds of jeering or cheering
citizens.
I knew that Zat Arras
dared not trust the people near to us, for he feared that their love for
Carthoris and myself might break into a demonstration which would wipe out
their superstitious horror of the crime we were to be charged with. What his
plans were I could only guess, but that they were sinister was evidenced by the
fact that only his most trusted servitors accompanied us upon the flier to the
Temple of Reward.
We were lodged in a
room upon the south side of the temple, overlooking the Avenue of Ancestors
down which we could see the full length to the Gate of Jeddaks, five miles
away. The people in the temple plaza and in the streets for a distance of a
full mile were standing as close packed as it was possible for them to get.
They were very orderly -- there were neither scoffs nor plaudits, and when they
saw us at the window above them there were many who buried their faces in their
arms and wept.
Late in the afternoon a
messenger arrived from Zat Arras to inform us that we would be tried by an
impartial body of nobles in the great hall of the temple at the 1st zode* on
the following day, or about 8:40 A.M. Earth time.
*Wherever Captain
Carter has used Martian measurements of time, distance, weight, and the like I
have translated them into as nearly their equivalent in earthly values as is
possible. His notes contain many Martian tables, and a great volume of
scientific data, but since the International Astronomic Society is at present
engaged in classifying, investigating, and verifying this vast fund of
remarkable and valuable information, I have felt that it will add nothing to
the interest of Captain Carter's story or to the sum total of human knowledge
to maintain a strict adherence to the original manuscript in these matters,
while it might readily confuse the reader and detract from the interest of the
history. For those who may be interested, however, I will explain that the
Martian day is a trifle over 24 hours 37 minutes duration (Earth time). This
the Martians divide into ten equal parts, commencing the day at about 6 A.M.
Earth time. The zodes are divided into fifty shorter periods, each of which in turn
is composed of 200 brief periods of time, about equivalent to the earthly
second. The Barsoomian Table of Time as here given is but a part of the full
table appearing in Captain Carter's notes.
200 tals . . . . . . .
. . 1 xat
50 xats . . . . . . . .
. 1 zode
10 zodes . . . . . . .
. 1 revolution of Mars upon its axis.
A FEW MOMENTS before
the appointed time on the following morning a strong guard of Zat Arras'
officers appeared at our quarters to conduct us to the great hall of the
temple.
In twos we entered the
chamber and marched down the broad Aisle of Hope, as it is called, to the
platform in the centre of the hall. Before and behind us marched armed guards,
while three solid ranks of Zodangan soldiery lined either side of the aisle
from the entrance to the rostrum.
As we reached the
raised enclosure I saw our judges. As is the custom upon Barsoom there were
thirty-one, supposedly selected by lot from men of the noble class, for nobles
were on trial. But to my amazement I saw no single friendly face among them.
Practically all were Zodangans, and it was I to whom Zodanga owed her defeat at
the hands of the green hordes and her subsequent vassalage to Helium. There
could be little justice here for John Carter, or his son, or for the great
Thark who had commanded the savage tribesmen who overran Zodanga's broad
avenues, looting, burning, and murdering.
About us the vast
circular coliseum was packed to its full capacity. All classes were represented
-- all ages, and both sexes. As we entered the hall the hum of subdued
conversation ceased until as we halted upon the platform, or Throne of
Righteousness, the silence of death enveloped the ten thousand spectators.
The judges were seated
in a great circle about the periphery of the circular platform. We were
assigned seats with our backs toward a small platform in the exact centre of
the larger one. This placed us facing the judges and the audience. Upon the
smaller platform each would take his place while his case was being heard.
Zat Arras himself sat
in the golden chair of the presiding magistrate. As we were seated and our
guards retired to the foot of the stairway leading to the platform, he arose
and called my name.
"John
Carter," he cried, "take your place upon the Pedestal of Truth to be
judged impartially according to your acts and here to know the reward you have
earned thereby." Then turning to and fro toward the audience he narrated
the acts upon the value of which my reward was to be determined.
"Know you, O
judges and people of Helium," he said, "that John Carter, one time
Prince of Helium, has returned by his own statement from the Valley Dor and
even from the Temple of Issus itself. That, in the presence of many men of
Helium he has blasphemed against the Sacred Iss, and against the Valley Dor,
and the Lost Sea of Korus, and the Holy Therns themselves, and even against
Issus, Goddess of Death, and of Life Eternal. And know you further by witness
of thine own eyes that see him here now upon the Pedestal of Truth that he has
indeed returned from these sacred precincts in the face of our ancient customs,
and in violation of the sanctity of our ancient religion.
"He who be once
dead may not live again. He who attempts it must be made dead for ever. Judges,
your duty lies plain before you -- here can be no testimony in contravention of
truth. What reward shall be meted to John Carter in accordance with the acts he
has committed?"
"Death!"
shouted one of the judges.
And then a man sprang to
his feet in the audience, and raising his hand on high, cried: "Justice!
Justice! Justice!" It was Kantos Kan, and as all eyes turned toward him he
leaped past the Zodangan soldiery and sprang upon the platform.
"What manner of
justice be this?" he cried to Zat Arras. "The defendant has not been
heard, nor has he had an opportunity to call others in his behalf. In the name
of the people of Helium I demand fair and impartial treatment for the Prince of
Helium."
A great cry arose from
the audience then: "Justice! Justice! Justice!" and Zat Arras dared
not deny them.
"Speak,
then," he snarled, turning to me; "but blaspheme not against the
things that are sacred upon Barsoom."
"Men of
Helium," I cried, turning to the spectators, and speaking over the heads
of my judges, "how can John Carter expect justice from the men of Zodanga?
He cannot nor does he ask it. It is to the men of Helium that he states his
case; nor does he appeal for mercy to any. It is not in his own cause that he
speaks now -- it is in thine. In the cause of your wives and daughters, and of
wives and daughters yet unborn. It is to save them from the unthinkably
atrocious indignities that I have seen heaped upon the fair women of Barsoom in
the place men call the Temple of Issus. It is to save them from the sucking
embrace of the plant men, from the fangs of the great white apes of Dor, from
the cruel lust of the Holy Therns, from all that the cold, dead Iss carries
them to from homes of love and life and happiness.
"Sits there no man
here who does not know the history of John Carter. How he came among you from
another world and rose from a prisoner among the green men, through torture and
persecution, to a place high among the highest of Barsoom. Nor ever did you
know John Carter to lie in his own behalf, or to say aught that might harm the
people of Barsoom, or to speak lightly of the strange religion which he
respected without understanding.
"There be no man
here, or elsewhere upon Barsoom to-day who does not owe his life directly to a
single act of mine, in which I sacrificed myself and the happiness of my
Princess that you might live. And so, men of Helium, I think that I have the
right to demand that I be heard, that I be believed, and that you let me serve
you and save you from the false hereafter of Dor and Issus as I saved you from
the real death that other day.
"It is to you of
Helium that I speak now. When I am done let the men of Zodanga have their will
with me. Zat Arras has taken my sword from me, so the men of Zodanga no longer
fear me. Will you listen?"
"Speak, John
Carter, Prince of Helium," cried a great noble from the audience, and the
multitude echoed his permission, until the building rocked with the noise of
their demonstration.
Zat Arras knew better
than to interfere with such a sentiment as was expressed that day in the Temple
of Reward, and so for two hours I talked with the people of Helium.
But when I had
finished, Zat Arras arose and, turning to the judges, said in a low tone:
"My nobles, you have heard John Carter's plea; every opportunity has been
given him to prove his innocence if he be not guilty; but instead he has but
utilized the time in further blasphemy. What, gentlemen, is your verdict?"
"Death to the
blasphemer!" cried one, springing to his feet, and in an instant the
entire thirty-one judges were on their feet with upraised swords in token of
the unanimity of their verdict.
If the people did not
hear Zat Arras' charge, they certainly did hear the verdict of the tribunal. A
sullen murmur rose louder and louder about the packed coliseum, and then Kantos
Kan, who had not left the platform since first he had taken his place near me,
raised his hand for silence. When he could be heard he spoke to the people in a
cool and level voice.
"You have heard
the fate that the men of Zodanga would mete to Helium's noblest hero. It may be
the duty of the men of Helium to accept the verdict as final. Let each man act
according to his own heart. Here is the answer of Kantos Kan, head of the navy
of Helium, to Zat Arras and his judges," and with that he unbuckled his
scabbard and threw his sword at my feet.
In an instant soldiers
and citizens, officers and nobles were crowding past the soldiers of Zodanga
and forcing their way to the Throne of Righteousness. A hundred men surged upon
the platform, and a hundred blades rattled and clanked to the floor at my feet.
Zat Arras and his officers were furious, but they were helpless. One by one I
raised the swords to my lips and buckled them again upon their owners.
"Come," sand
Kantos Kan, "we will escort John Carter and his party to his own
palace," and they formed about us and started toward the stairs leading to
the Aisle of Hope.
"Stop!" cried
Zat Arras. "Soldiers of Helium, let no prisoner leave the Throne of
Righteousness."
The soldiery from
Zodanga were the only organized body of Heliumetic troops within the temple, so
Zat Arras was confident that his orders would be obeyed, but I do not think
that he looked for the opposition that was raised the moment the soldiers
advanced toward the throne.
From every quarter of
the coliseum swords flashed and men rushed threateningly upon the Zodangans.
Some one raised a cry: "Tardos Mors is dead -- a thousand years to John
Carter, Jeddak of Helium." As I heard that and saw the ugly attitude of
the men of Helium toward the soldiers of Zat Arras, I knew that only a miracle
could avert a clash that would end in civil war.
"Hold!" I
cried, leaping to the Pedestal of Truth once more. "Let no man move till I
am done. A single sword thrust here to-day may plunge Helium into a bitter and
bloody war the results of which none can foresee. It will turn brother against
brother and father against son. No man's life is worth that sacrifice. Rather
would I submit to the biased judgment of Zat Arras than be the cause of civil
strife in Helium.
"Let us each give
in a point to the other, and let this entire matter rest until Tardos Mors
returns, or Mors Kajak, his son. If neither be back at the end of a year a
second trial may be held -- the thing has a precedent." And then turning
to Zat Arras, I said in a low voice: "Unless you be a bigger fool than I
take you to be, you will grasp the chance I am offering you ere it is too late.
Once that multitude of swords below is drawn against your soldiery no man upon
Barsoom -- not even Tardos Mors himself -- can avert the consequences. What say
you? Speak quickly."
The Jed of Zodangan
Helium raised his voice to the angry sea beneath us.
"Stay your hands,
men of Helium," he shouted, his voice trembling with rage. "The
sentence of the court is passed, but the day of retribution has not been set.
I, Zat Arras, Jed of Zodanga, appreciating the royal connections of the prisoner
and his past services to Helium and Barsoom, grant a respite of one year, or
until the return of Mors Kajak, or Tardos Mors to Helium. Disperse quietly to
your houses. Go."
No one moved. Instead,
they stood in tense silence with their eyes fastened upon me, as though waiting
for a signal to attack.
"Clear the
temple," commanded Zat Arras, in a low tone to one of his officers.
Fearing the result of
an attempt to carry out this order by force, I stepped to the edge of the
platform and, pointing toward the main entrance, bid them pass out. As one man
they turned at my request and filed, silent and threatening, past the soldiers
of Zat Arras, Jed of Zodanga, who stood scowling in impotent rage.
Kantos Kan with the
others who had sworn allegiance to me still stood upon the Throne of
Righteousness with me.
"Come," said
Kantos Kan to me, "we will escort you to your palace, my Prince. Come,
Carthoris and Xodar. Come, Tars Tarkas." And with a haughty sneer for Zat
Arras upon his handsome lips, he turned and strode to the throne steps and up
the Aisle of Hope. We four and the hundred loyal ones followed behind him, nor
was a hand raised to stay us, though glowering eyes followed our triumphal
march through the temple.
In the avenues we found
a press of people, but they opened a pathway for us, and many were the swords
that were flung at my feet as I passed through the city of Helium toward my
palace upon the outskirts. Here my old slaves fell upon their knees and kissed
my hands as I greeted them. They cared not where I had been. It was enough that
I had returned to them.
"Ah, master,"
cried one, "if our divine Princess were but here this would be a day
indeed."
Tears came to my eyes,
so that I was forced to turn away that I might hide my emotions. Carthoris wept
openly as the slaves pressed about him with expressions of affection, and words
of sorrow for our common loss. It was now that Tars Tarkas for the first time
learned that his daughter, Sola, had accompanied Dejah Thoris upon the last
long pilgrimage. I had not had the heart to tell him what Kantos Kan had told
me. With the stoicism of the green Martian he showed no sign of suffering, yet
I knew that his grief was as poignant as my own. In marked contrast to his
kind, he had in well-developed form the kindlier human characteristics of love,
friendship, and charity.
It was a sad and sombre
party that sat at the feast of welcome in the great dining hall of the palace
of the Prince of Helium that day. We were over a hundred strong, not counting
the members of my little court, for Dejah Thoris and I had maintained a
household consistent with our royal rank.
The board, according to
red Martian custom, was triangular, for there were three in our family.
Carthoris and I presided in the centre of our sides of the table -- midway of
the third side Dejah Thoris' high-backed, carven chair stood vacant except for
her gorgeous wedding trappings and jewels which were draped upon it. Behind
stood a slave as in the days when his mistress had occupied her place at the
board, ready to do her bidding. It was the way upon Barsoom, so I endured the
anguish of it, though it wrung my heart to see that silent chair where should
have been my laughing and vivacious Princess keeping the great hall ringing
with her merry gaiety.
At my right sat Kantos
Kan, while to the right of Dejah Thoris' empty place Tars Tarkas sat in a huge
chair before a raised section of the board which years ago I had had
constructed to meet the requirements of his mighty bulk. The place of honour at
a Martian hoard is always at the hostess's right, and this place was ever
reserved by Dejah Thoris for the great Thark upon the occasions that he was in
Helium.
Hor Vastus sat in the
seat of honour upon Carthoris' side of the table. There was little general
conversation. It was a quiet and saddened party. The loss of Dejah Thoris was
still fresh in the minds of all, and to this was added fear for the safety of
Tardos Mors and Mors Kajak, as well as doubt and uncertainty as to the fate of
Helium, should it prove true that she was permanently deprived of her great
Jeddak.
Suddenly our attention
was attracted by the sound of distant shouting, as of many people raising their
voices at once, but whether in anger or rejoicing, we could not tell. Nearer
and nearer came the tumult. A slave rushed into the dining hall to cry that a
great concourse of people was swarming through the palace gates. A second burst
upon the heels of the first alternately laughing and shrieking as a madman.
"Dejah Thoris is
found!" he cried. "A messenger from Dejah Thoris!"
I waited to hear no
more. The great windows of the dining hall overlooked the avenue leading to the
main gates -- they were upon the opposite side of the hall from me with the
table intervening. I did not waste time in circling the great board -- with a
single leap I cleared table and diners and sprang upon the balcony beyond.
Thirty feet below lay the scarlet sward of the lawn and beyond were many people
crowding about a great thoat which bore a rider headed toward the palace. I
vaulted to the ground below and ran swiftly toward the advancing party.
As I came near to them
I saw that the figure on the thoat was Sola.
"Where is the
Princess of Helium?" I cried.
The green girl slid
from her mighty mount and ran toward me.
"O my Prince! My
Prince!" she cried. "She is gone for ever. Even now she may be a
captive upon the lesser moon. The black pirates of Barsoom have stolen
her."
ONCE WITHIN THE PALACE,
I drew Sola to the dining hall, and, when she had greeted her father after the
formal manner of the green men, she told the story of the pilgrimage and
capture of Dejah Thoris.
"Seven days ago,
after her audience with Zat Arras, Dejah Thoris attempted to slip from the
palace in the dead of night. Although I had not heard the outcome of her
interview with Zat Arras I knew that something had occurred then to cause her
the keenest mental agony, and when I discovered her creeping from the palace I
did not need to be told her destination.
"Hastily arousing
a dozen of her most faithful guards, I explained my fears to them, and as one
they enlisted with me to follow our beloved Princess in her wanderings, even to
the Sacred Iss and the Valley Dor. We came upon her but a short distance from
the palace. With her was faithful Woola the hound, but none other. When we
overtook her she feigned anger, and ordered us back to the palace, but for once
we disobeyed her, and when she found that we would not let her go upon the last
long pilgrimage alone, she wept and embraced us, and together we went out into
the night toward the south.
"The following day
we came upon a herd of small thoats, and thereafter we were mounted and made
good time. We travelled very fast and very far due south until the morning of
the fifth day we sighted a great fleet of battleships sailing north. They saw
us before we could seek shelter, and soon we were surrounded by a horde of
black men. The Princess's guard fought nobly to the end, but they were soon
overcome and slain. Only Dejah Thoris and I were spared.
When she realized that
she was in the clutches of the black pirates, she attempted to take her own
life, but one of the blacks tore her dagger from her, and then they bound us
both so that we could not use our hands.
"The fleet
continued north after capturing us. There were about twenty large battleships
in all, besides a number of small swift cruisers. That evening one of the
smaller cruisers that had been far in advance of the fleet returned with a
prisoner -- a young red woman whom they had picked up in a range of hills under
the very noses, they said, of a fleet of three red Martian battleships.
"From scraps of
conversation which we overheard it was evident that the black pirates were
searching for a party of fugitives that had escaped them several days prior.
That they considered the capture of the young woman important was evident from
the long and earnest interview the commander of the fleet held with her when
she was brought to him. Later she was bound and placed in the compartment with
Dejah Thoris and myself.
"The new captive
was a very beautiful girl. She told Dejah Thoris that many years ago she had
taken the voluntary pilgrimage from the court of her father, the Jeddak of
Ptarth. She was Thuvia, the Princess of Ptarth. And then she asked Dejah Thoris
who she might be, and when she heard she fell upon her knees and kissed Dejah
Thoris' fettered hands, and told her that that very morning she had been with
John Carter, Prince of Helium, and Carthoris, her son.
"Dejah Thoris
could not believe her at first, but finally when the girl had narrated all the
strange adventures that had befallen her since she had met John Carter, and
told her of the things John Carter, and Carthoris, and Xodar had narrated of
their adventures in the Land of the First Born, Dejah Thoris knew that it could
be none other than the Prince of Helium; 'For who,' she said, 'upon all Barsoom
other than John Carter could have done the deeds you tell of.' And when Thuvia
told Dejah Thoris of her love for John Carter, and his loyalty and devotion to
the Princess of his choice, Dejah Thoris broke down and wept -- cursing Zat
Arras and the cruel fate that had driven her from Helium but a few brief days
before the return of her beloved lord.
"'I do not blame
you for loving him, Thuvia,' she said; 'and that your affection for him is pure
and sincere I can well believe from the candour of your avowal of it to me.'
"The fleet
continued north nearly to Helium, but last night they evidently realized that
John Carter had indeed escaped them and so they turned toward the south once
more. Shortly thereafter a guard entered our compartment and dragged me to the
deck.
"'There is no
place in the Land of the First Born for a green one,' he said, and with that he
gave me a terrific shove that carried me toppling from the deck of the
battleship. Evidently this seemed to him the easiest way of ridding the vessel
of my presence and killing me at the same time.
"But a kind fate
intervened, and by a miracle I escaped with but slight bruises. The ship was
moving slowly at the time, and as I lunged overboard into the darkness beneath
I shuddered at the awful plunge I thought awaited me, for all day the fleet had
sailed thousands of feet above the ground; but to my utter surprise I struck upon
a soft mass of vegetation not twenty feet from the deck of the ship. In fact,
the keel of the vessel must have been grazing the surface of the ground at the
time.
"I lay all night
where I had fallen and the next morning brought an explanation of the fortunate
coincidence that had saved me from a terrible death. As the sun rose I saw a
vast panorama of sea bottom and distant hills lying far below me. I was upon
the highest peak of a lofty range. The fleet in the darkness of the preceding
night had barely grazed the crest of the hills, and in the brief span that they
hovered close to the surface the black guard had pitched me, as he supposed, to
my death.
"A few miles west
of me was a great waterway. When I reached it I found to my delight that it
belonged to Helium. Here a thoat was procured for me -- the rest you
know."
For many minutes none
spoke. Dejah Thoris in the clutches of the First Born! I shuddered at the
thought, but of a sudden the old fire of unconquerable self-confidence surged
through me. I sprang to my feet, and with back-thrown shoulders and upraised
sword took a solemn vow to reach, rescue, and revenge my Princess.
A hundred swords leaped
from a hundred scabbards, and a hundred fighting-men sprang to the table-top
and pledged me their lives and fortunes to the expedition. Already my plans
were formulated. I thanked each loyal friend, and leaving Carthoris to
entertain them, withdrew to my own audience chamber with Kantos Kan, Tars
Tarkas, Xodar, and Hor Vastus.
Here we discussed the
details of our expedition until long after dark. Xodar was positive that Issus
would choose both Dejah Thoris and Thuvia to serve her for a year.
"For that length
of time at least they will be comparatively safe," he said, "and we
will at least know where to look for them."
In the matter of
equipping a fleet to enter Omean the details were left to Kantos Kan and Xodar.
The former agreed to take such vessels as we required into dock as rapidly as
possible, where Xodar would direct their equipment with water propellers.
For many years the
black had been in charge of the refitting of captured battleships that they
might navigate Omean, and so was familiar with the construction of the
propellers, housings, and the auxiliary gearing required.
It was estimated that
it would require six months to complete our preparations in view of the fact
that the utmost secrecy must be maintained to keep the project from the ears of
Zat Arras. Kantos Kan was confident now that the man's ambitions were fully
aroused and that nothing short of the title of Jeddak of Helium would satisfy
him.
"I doubt," he
said, "if he would even welcome Dejah Thoris' return, for it would mean
another nearer the throne than he. With you and Carthoris out of the way there
would be little to prevent him from assuming the title of Jeddak, and you may
rest assured that so long as he is supreme here there is no safety for either
of you."
"There is a
way," cried Hor Vastus, "to thwart him effectually and for
ever."
"What?" I
asked.
He smiled.
"I shall whisper
it here, but some day I shall stand upon the dome of the Temple of Reward and
shout it to cheering multitudes below."
"What do you
mean?" asked Kantos Kan.
"John Carter,
Jeddak of Helium," said Hor Vastus in a low voice.
The eyes of my
companions lighted, and grim smiles of pleasure and anticipation overspread
their faces, as each eye turned toward me questioningly. But I shook my head.
"No, my
friends," I said, smiling, "I thank you, but it cannot be. Not yet,
at least. When we know that Tardos Mors and Mors Kajak are gone to return no
more; if I be here, then I shall join you all to see that the people of Helium
are permitted to choose fairly their next Jeddak. Whom they choose may count
upon the loyalty of my sword, nor shall I seek the honour for myself. Until
then Tardos Mors is Jeddak of Helium, and Zat Arras is his
representative."
"As you will, John
Carter," said Hor Vastus, "but -- What was that?" he whispered,
pointing toward the window overlooking the gardens.
The words were scarce
out of his mouth ere he had sprung to the balcony without.
"There he
goes!" he cried excitedly. "The guards! Below there! The
guards!"
We were close behind
him, and all saw the figure of a man run quickly across a little piece of sward
and disappear in the shrubbery beyond.
"He was on the
balcony when I first saw him," cried Hor Vastus. "Quick! Let us
follow him!"
Together we ran to the
gardens, but even though we scoured the grounds with the entire guard for
hours, no trace could we find of the night marauder.
"What do you make
of it, Kantos Kan?" asked Tars Tarkas.
"A spy sent by Zat
Arras," he replied. "It was ever his way."
"He will have
something interesting to report to his master then," laughed Hor Vastus.
"I hope he heard
only our references to a new Jeddak," I said. "If he overheard our
plans to rescue Dejah Thoris, it will mean civil war, for he will attempt to
thwart us, and in that I will not be thwarted. There would I turn against
Tardos Mors himself, were it necessary. If it throws all Helium into a bloody
conflict, I shall go on with these plans to save my Princess. Nothing shall
stay me now short of death, and should I die, my friends, will you take oath to
prosecute the search for her and bring her back in safety to her grandfather's
court?"
Upon the hilt of his
sword each of them swore to do as I had asked.
It was agreed that the
battleships that were to be remodelled should be ordered to Hastor, another
Heliumetic city, far to the south-west. Kantos Kan thought that the docks
there, in addition to their regular work, would accommodate at least six
battleships at a time. As he was commander-in-chief of the navy, it would be a
simple matter for him to order the vessels there as they could be handled, and
thereafter keep the remodelled fleet in remote parts of the empire until we
should be ready to assemble it for the dash upon Omean.
It was late that night
before our conference broke up, but each man there had his particular duties
outlined, and the details of the entire plan had been mapped out.
Kantos Kan and Xodar
were to attend to the remodelling of the ships. Tars Tarkas was to get into
communication with Thark and learn the sentiments of his people toward his
return from Dor. If favourable, he was to repair immediately to Thark and
devote his time to the assembling of a great horde of green warriors whom it
was our plan to send in transports directly to the Valley Dor and the Temple of
Issus, while the fleet entered Omean and destroyed the vessels of the First
Born.
Upon Hor Vastus
devolved the delicate mission of organising a secret force of fighting-men
sworn to follow John Carter wherever he might lead. As we estimated that it
would require over a million men to man the thousand great battleships we
intended to use on Omean and the transports for the green men as well as the
ships that were to convoy the transports, it was no trifling job that Hor
Vastus had before him.
After they had left I
bid Carthoris good-night, for I was very tired, and going to my own apartments,
bathed and lay down upon my sleeping silks and furs for the first good night's
sleep I had had an opportunity to look forward to since I had returned to
Barsoom. But even now I was to be disappointed.
How long I slept I do
not know. When I awoke suddenly it was to find a half-dozen powerful men upon
me, a gag already in my mouth, and a moment later my arms and legs securely
bound. So quickly had they worked and to such good purpose, that I was utterly
beyond the power to resist them by the time I was fully awake.
Never a word spoke
they, and the gag effectually prevented me speaking. Silently they lifted me
and bore me toward the door of my chamber. As they passed the window through
which the farther moon was casting its brilliant beams, I saw that each of the
party had his face swathed in layers of silk -- I could not recognize one of
them.
When they had come into
the corridor with me, they turned toward a secret panel in the wall which led
to the passage that terminated in the pits beneath the palace. That any knew of
this panel outside my own household, I was doubtful. Yet the leader of the band
did not hesitate a moment. He stepped directly to the panel, touched the
concealed button, and as the door swung open he stood aside while his
companions entered with me. Then he closed the panel behind him and followed
us.
Down through the
passageways to the pits we went. The leader rapped upon it with the hilt of his
sword -- three quick, sharp blows, a pause, then three more, another pause, and
then two. A second later the wall swung in, and I was pushed within a
brilliantly lighted chamber in which sat three richly trapped men.
One of them turned
toward me with a sardonic smile upon his thin, cruel lips -- it was Zat Arras.
"AH," SAID
ZAT ARRAS, "to what kindly circumstance am I indebted for the pleasure of
this unexpected visit from the Prince of Helium?"
While he was speaking,
one of my guards had removed the gag from my mouth, but I made no reply to Zat
Arras: simply standing there in silence with level gaze fixed upon the Jed of
Zodanga. And I doubt not that my expression was coloured by the contempt I felt
for the man.
The eyes of those
within the chamber were fixed first upon me and then upon Zat Arras, until
finally a flush of anger crept slowly over his face.
"You may go,"
he said to those who had brought me, and when only his two companions and ourselves
were left in the chamber, he spoke to me again in a voice of ice -- very slowly
and deliberately, with many pauses, as though he would choose his words
cautiously.
"John
Carter," he said, "by the edict of custom, by the law of our
religion, and by the verdict of an impartial court, you are condemned to die.
The people cannot save you -- I alone may accomplish that. You are absolutely
in my power to do with as I wish -- I may kill you, or I may free you, and
should I elect to kill you, none would be the wiser.
"Should you go
free in Helium for a year, in accordance with the conditions of your reprieve,
there is little fear that the people would ever insist upon the execution of
the sentence imposed upon you.
"You may go free
within two minutes, upon one condition. Tardos Mors will never return to
Helium. Neither will Mors Kajak, nor Dejah Thoris. Helium must select a new
Jeddak within the year. Zat Arras would be Jeddak of Helium. Say that you will
espouse my cause. This is the price of your freedom. I am done."
I knew it was within
the scope of Zat Arras' cruel heart to destroy me, and if I were dead I could
see little reason to doubt that he might easily become Jeddak of Helium. Free,
I could prosecute the search for Dejah Thoris. Were I dead, my brave comrades
might not be able to carry out our plans. So, by refusing to accede to his
request, it was quite probable that not only would I not prevent him from
becoming Jeddak of Helium, but that I would be the means of sealing Dejah
Thoris' fate -- of consigning her, through my refusal, to the horrors of the
arena of Issus.
For a moment I was
perplexed, but for a moment only. The proud daughter of a thousand Jeddaks
would choose death to a dishonorable alliance such as this, nor could John
Carter do less for Helium than his Princess would do.
Then I turned to Zat
Arras.
"There can be no
alliance," I said, "between a traitor to Helium and a prince of the
House of Tardos Mors. I do not believe, Zat Arras, that the great Jeddak is
dead."
Zat Arras shrugged his
shoulders.
"It will not be
long, John Carter," he said, "that your opinions will be of interest
even to yourself, so make the best of them while you can. Zat Arras will permit
you in due time to reflect further upon the magnanimous offer he has made you.
Into the silence and darkness of the pits you will enter upon your reflection
this night with the knowledge that should you fail within a reasonable time to
agree to the alternative which has been offered you, never shall you emerge from
the darkness and the silence again. Nor shall you know at what minute the hand
will reach out through the darkness and the silence with the keen dagger that
shall rob you of your last chance to win again the warmth and the freedom and
joyousness of the outer world."
Zat Arras clapped his
hands as he ceased speaking. The guards returned.
Zat Arras waved his
hand in my direction.
"To the
pits," he said. That was all. Four men accompanied me from the chamber,
and with a radium hand-light to illumine the way, escorted me through seemingly
interminable tunnels, down, ever down beneath the city of Helium.
At length they halted
within a fair-sized chamber. There were rings set in the rocky walls. To them
chains were fastened, and at the ends of many of the chains were human
skeletons. One of these they kicked aside, and, unlocking the huge padlock that
had held a chain about what had once been a human ankle, they snapped the iron
band about my own leg. Then they left me, taking the light with them.
Utter darkness
prevailed. For a few minutes I could hear the clanking of accoutrements, but
even this grew fainter and fainter, until at last the silence was as complete
as the darkness. I was alone with my gruesome companions -- with the bones of
dead men whose fate was likely but the index of my own.
How long I stood
listening in the darkness I do not know, but the silence was unbroken, and at
last I sunk to the hard floor of my prison, where, leaning my head against the
stony wall, I slept.
It must have been
several hours later that I awakened to find a young man standing before me. In
one hand he bore a light, in the other a receptacle containing a gruel-like
mixture -- the common prison fare of Barsoom.
"Zat Arras sends
you greetings," said the young man, "and commands me to inform you
that though he is fully advised of the plot to make you Jeddak of Helium, he
is, however, not inclined to withdraw the offer which he has made you. To gain
your freedom you have but to request me to advise Zat Arras that you accept the
terms of his proposition."
I but shook my head.
The youth said no more, and, after placing the food upon the floor at my side,
returned up the corridor, taking the light with him.
Twice a day for many
days this youth came to my cell with food, and ever the same greetings from Zat
Arras. For a long time I tried to engage him in conversation upon other
matters, but he would not talk, and so, at length, I desisted.
For months I sought to
devise methods to inform Carthoris of my whereabouts. For months I scraped and
scraped upon a single link of the massive chain which held me, hoping
eventually to wear it through, that I might follow the youth back through the
winding tunnels to a point where I could make a break for liberty.
I was beside myself
with anxiety for knowledge of the progress of the expedition which was to
rescue Dejah Thoris. I felt that Carthoris would not let the matter drop, were
he free to act, but in so far as I knew, he also might be a prisoner in Zat
Arras' pits.
That Zat Arras' spy had
overheard our conversation relative to the selection of a new Jeddak, I knew,
and scarcely a half-dozen minutes prior we had discussed the details of the
plan to rescue Dejah Thoris. The chances were that that matter, too, was well
known to him. Carthoris, Kantos Kan, Tars Tarkas, Hor Vastus, and Xodar might
even now be the victims of Zat Arras' assassins, or else his prisoners.
I determined to make at
least one more effort to learn something, and to this end I adopted strategy
when next the youth came to my cell. I had noticed that he was a handsome
fellow, about the size and age of Carthoris. And I had also noticed that his
shabby trappings but illy comported with his dignified and noble bearing.
It was with these
observations as a basis that I opened my negotiations with him upon his next
subsequent visit.
"You have been
very kind to me during my imprisonment here," I said to him, "and as
I feel that I have at best but a very short time to live, I wish, ere it is too
late, to furnish substantial testimony of my appreciation of all that you have
done to render my imprisonment bearable.
"Promptly you have
brought my food each day, seeing that it was pure and of sufficient quantity.
Never by word or deed have you attempted to take advantage of my defenceless
condition to insult or torture me. You have been uniformly courteous and
considerate -- it is this more than any other thing which prompts my feeling of
gratitude and my desire to give you some slight token of it.
"In the guard-room
of my palace are many fine trappings. Go thou there and select the harness
which most pleases you -- it shall be yours. All I ask is that you wear it,
that I may know that my wish has been realized. Tell me that you will do
it."
The boy's eyes had
lighted with pleasure as I spoke, and I saw him glance from his rusty trappings
to the magnificence of my own. For a moment he stood in thought before he
spoke, and for that moment my heart fairly ceased beating -- so much for me
there was which hung upon the substance of his answer.
"And I went to the
palace of the Prince of Helium with any such demand, they would laugh at me
and, into the bargain, would more than likely throw me headforemost into the
avenue No, it cannot be, though I thank you for the offer. Why, if Zat Arras
even dreamed that I contemplated such a thing he would have my heart cut out of
me."
"There can be no
harm in it, my boy," I urged. "By night you may go to my palace with
a note from me to Carthoris, my son. You may read the note before you deliver
it, that you may know that it contains nothing harmful to Zat Arras. My son
will be discreet, and so none but us three need know. It is very simple, and
such a harmless act that it could be condemned by no one."
Again he stood silently
in deep thought.
"And there is a
jewelled short-sword which I took from the body of a northern Jeddak. When you
get the harness, see that Carthoris gives you that also. With it and the
harness which you may select there will be no more handsomely accoutred warrior
in all Zodanga.
"Bring writing
materials when you come next to my cell, and within a few hours we shall see
you garbed in a style befitting your birth and carriage."
Still in thought, and
without speaking, he turned and left me. I could not guess what his decision
might be, and for hours I sat fretting over the outcome of the matter.
If he accepted a
message to Carthoris it would mean to me that Carthoris still lived and was
free. If the youth returned wearing the harness and the sword, I would know
that Carthoris had received my note and that he knew that I still lived. That
the bearer of the note was a Zodangan would be sufficient to explain to
Carthoris that I was a prisoner of Zat Arras.
It was with feelings of
excited expectancy which I could scarce hide that I heard the youth's approach
upon the occasion of his next regular visit. I did not speak beyond my
accustomed greeting of him. As he placed the food upon the floor by my side he
also deposited writing materials at the same time.
My heart fairly bounded
for joy. I had won my point. For a moment I looked at the materials in feigned
surprise, but soon I permitted an expression of dawning comprehension to come
into my face, and then, picking them up, I penned a brief order to Carthoris to
deliver to Parthak a harness of his selection and the short-sword which I
described. That was all. But it meant everything to me and to Carthoris.
I laid the note open
upon the floor. Parthak picked it up and, without a word, left me.
As nearly as I could
estimate, I had at this time been in the pits for three hundred days. If
anything was to be done to save Dejah Thoris it must be done quickly, for, were
she not already dead, her end must soon come, since those whom Issus chose
lived but a single year.
The next time I heard
approaching footsteps I could scarce await to see if Parthak wore the harness
and the sword, but judge, if you can, my chagrin and disappointment when I saw
that he who bore my food was not Parthak.
"What has become
of Parthak?" I asked, but the fellow would not answer, and as soon as he
had deposited my food, turned and retraced his steps to the world above.
Days came and went, and
still my new jailer continued his duties, nor would he ever speak a word to me,
either in reply to the simplest question or of his own initiative.
I could only speculate
on the cause of Parthak's removal, but that it was connected in some way
directly with the note I had given him was most apparent to me. After all my
rejoicing, I was no better off than before, for now I did not even know that
Carthoris lived, for if Parthak had wished to raise himself in the estimation
of Zat Arras he would have permitted me to go on precisely as I did, so that he
could carry my note to his master, in proof of his own loyalty and devotion.
Thirty days had passed
since I had given the youth the note. Three hundred and thirty days had passed
since my incarceration. As closely as I could figure, there remained a bare
thirty days ere Dejah Thoris would be ordered to the arena for the rites of
Issus.
As the terrible picture
forced itself vividly across my imagination, I buried my face in my arms, and
only with the greatest difficulty was it that I repressed the tears that welled
to my eyes despite my every effort. To think of that beautiful creature torn
and rended by the cruel fangs of the hideous white apes! It was unthinkable.
Such a horrid fact could not be; and yet my reason told me that within thirty
days my incomparable Princess would be fought over in the arena of the First
Born by those very wild beasts; that her bleeding corpse would be dragged
through the dirt and the dust, until at last a part of it would be rescued to
be served as food upon the tables of the black nobles.
I think that I should
have gone crazy but for the sound of my approaching jailer. It distracted my
attention from the terrible thoughts that had been occupying my entire mind.
Now a new and grim determination came to me. I would make one super-human
effort to escape. Kill my jailer by a ruse, and trust to fate to lead me to the
outer world in safety.
With the thought came
instant action. I threw myself upon the floor of my cell close by the wall, in
a strained and distorted posture, as though I were dead after a struggle or
convulsions. When he should stoop over me I had but to grasp his throat with
one hand and strike him a terrific blow with the slack of my chain, which I
gripped firmly in my right hand for the purpose.
Nearer and nearer came
the doomed man. Now I heard him halt before me. There was a muttered
exclamation, and then a step as he came to my side. I felt him kneel beside me.
My grip tightened upon the chain. He leaned close to me. I must open my eyes to
find his throat, grasp it, and strike one mighty final blow all at the same
instant.
The thing worked just
as I had planned. So brief was the interval between the opening of my eyes and
the fall of the chain that I could not check it, though it that minute interval
I recognized the face so close to mine as that of my son, Carthoris.
God! What cruel and
malign fate had worked to such a frightful end! What devious chain of
circumstances had led my boy to my side at this one particular minute of our
lives when I could strike him down and kill him, in ignorance of his identity!
A benign though tardy Providence blurred my vision and my mind as I sank into
unconsciousness across the lifeless body of my only son.
When I regained
consciousness it was to feel a cool, firm hand pressed upon my forehead. For an
instant I did not open my eyes. I was endeavouring to gather the loose ends of
many thoughts and memories which flitted elusively through my tired and
overwrought brain.
At length came the
cruel recollection of the thing that I had done in my last conscious act, and
then I dared not to open my eyes for fear of what I should see lying beside me.
I wondered who it could be who ministered to me. Carthoris must have had a
companion whom I had not seen. Well, I must face the inevitable some time, so
why not now, and with a sigh I opened my eyes.
Leaning over me was
Carthoris, a great bruise upon his forehead where the chain had struck, but
alive, thank God, alive! There was no one with him. Reaching out my arms, I
took my boy within them, and if ever there arose from any planet a fervent
prayer of gratitude, it was there beneath the crust of dying Mars as I thanked
the Eternal Mystery for my son's life."
The brief instant in
which I had seen and recognized Carthoris before the chain fell must have been
ample to check the force of the blow. He told me that he had lain unconscious
for a time -- how long he did not know.
"How came you here
at all?" I asked, mystified that he had found me without a guide.
"It was by your
wit in apprising me of your existence and imprisonment through the youth,
Parthak. Until he came for his harness and his sword, we had thought you dead.
When I had read your note I did as you had bid, giving Parthak his choice of
the harness in the guardroom, and later bringing the jewelled short-sword to
him; but the minute that I had fulfilled the promise you evidently had made
him, my obligation to him ceased. Then I commenced to question him, but he
would give me no information as to your whereabouts. He was intensely loyal to
Zat Arras.
"Finally I gave
him a fair choice between freedom and the pits beneath the palace -- the price
of freedom to be full information as to where you were imprisoned and
directions which would lead us to you; but still he maintained his stubborn
partisanship. Despairing, I had him removed to the pits, where he still is.
"No threats of
torture or death, no bribes, however fabulous, would move him. His only reply
to all our importunities was that whenever Parthak died, were it to-morrow or a
thousand years hence, no man could truly say, 'A traitor is gone to his deserts.'
"Finally, Xodar,
who is a fiend for subtle craftiness, evolved a plan whereby we might worm the
information from him. And so I caused Hor Vastus to be harnessed in the metal
of a Zodangan soldier and chained in Parthak's cell beside him. For fifteen
days the noble Hor Vastus has languished in the darkness of the pits, but not
in vain. Little by little he won the confidence and friendship of the Zodangan,
until only to-day Parthak, thinking that he was speaking not only to a
countryman, but to a dear friend, revealed that Hor Vastus the exact cell in
which you lay.
"It took me but a
short time to locate the plans of the pits of Helium among thy official papers.
To come to you, though, was a trifle more difficult matter. As you know, while
all the pits beneath the city are connected, there are but single entrances
from those beneath each section and its neighbour, and that at the upper level
just underneath the ground.
"Of course, these
openings which lead from contiguous pits to those beneath government buildings
are always guarded, and so, while I easily came to the entrance to the pits
beneath the palace which Zat Arras is occupying, I found there a Zodangan
soldier on guard. There I left him when I had gone by, but his soul was no
longer with him.
"And here I am,
just in time to be nearly killed by you," he ended, laughing.
As he talked Carthoris
had been working at the lock which held my fetters, and now, with an
exclamation of pleasure, he dropped the end of the chain to the floor, and I stood
up once more, freed from the galling irons I had chafed in for almost a year.
He had brought a
long-sword and a dagger for me, and thus armed we set out upon the return
journey to my palace.
At the point where we
left the pits of Zat Arras we found the body of the guard Carthoris had slain.
It had not yet been discovered, and, in order to still further delay search and
mystify the jed's people, we carried the body with us for a short distance,
hiding it in a tiny cell off the main corridor of the pits beneath an adjoining
estate.
Some half-hour later we
came to the pits beneath our own palace, and soon thereafter emerged into the
audience chamber itself, where we found Kantos Kan, Tars Tarkas, Hor Vastus,
and Xodar awaiting us most impatiently.
No time was lost in
fruitless recounting of my imprisonment. What I desired to know was how well
the plans we had laid nearly a year ago and had been carried out.
"It has taken much
longer than we had expected," replied Kantos Kan. "The fact that we
were compelled to maintain utter secrecy has handicapped us terribly. Zat
Arras' spies are everywhere. Yet, to the best of my knowledge, no word of our
real plans has reached the villain's ear.
"To-night there
lies about the great docks at Hastor a fleet of a thousand of the mightiest
battleships that ever sailed above Barsoom, and each equipped to navigate the
air of Omean and the waters of Omean itself. Upon each battleship there are
five ten-man cruisers, and ten five-man scouts, and a hundred one-man scouts;
in all, one hundred and sixteen thousand craft fitted with both air and water
propellers.
"At Thark lie the
transports for the green warriors of Tars Tarkas, nine hundred large
troopships, and with them their convoys. Seven days ago all was in readiness,
but we waited in the hope that by so doing your rescue might be encompassed in
time for you to command the expedition. It is well we waited, my Prince."
"How is it, Tars
Tarkas," I asked, "that the men of Thark take not the accustomed
action against one who returns from the bosom of Iss?"
"They sent a
council of fifty chieftains to talk with me here," replied the Thark.
"We are a just people, and when I had told them the entire story they were
as one man in agreeing that their action toward me would be guided by the
action of Helium toward John Carter. In the meantime, at their request, I was
to resume my throne as Jeddak of Thark, that I might negotiate with neighboring
hordes for warriors to compose the land forces of the expedition. I have done that
which I agreed. Two hundred and fifty thousand fighting-men, gathered from the
ice cap at the north to the ice cap at the south, and representing a thousand
different communities, from a hundred wild and warlike hordes, fill the great
city of Thark to-night. They are ready to sail for the Land of the First Born
when I give the word and fight there until I bid them stop. All they ask is the
loot they take and transportation to their own territories when the fighting
and the looting are over. I am done."
"And thou, Hor
Vastus," I asked, "what has been thy success?"
"A million veteran
fighting-men from Helium's thin waterways man the battleships, the transports,
and the convoys," he replied. "Each is sworn to loyalty and secrecy,
nor were enough recruited from a single district to cause suspicion."
"Good!" I
cried. "Each has done his duty, and now, Kantos Kan, may we not repair at
once to Hastor and get under way before to-morrow's sun?"
"We should lose no
time, Prince," replied Kantos Kan. "Already the people of Hastor are
questioning the purpose of so great a fleet fully manned with fighting-men. I
wonder much that word of it has not before reached Zat Arras. A cruiser awaits
above at your own dock; let us leave at -- " A fusillade of shots from the
palace gardens just without cut short his further words.
Together we rushed to
the balcony in time to see a dozen members of my palace guard disappear in the
shadows of some distant shrubbery as in pursuit of one who fled. Directly
beneath us upon the scarlet sward a handful of guardsmen were stooping above a
still and prostrate form.
While we watched they
lifted the figure in their arms and at my command bore it to the audience
chamber where we had been in council. When they stretched the body at our feet
we saw that it was that of a red man in the prime of life -- his metal was
plain, such as common soldiers wear, or those who wish to conceal their
identity.
"Another of Zat
Arras' spies," said Hor Vastus.
"So it would
seem," I replied, and then to the guard: "You may remove the
body."
"Wait!" said
Xodar. "If you will, Prince, ask that a cloth and a little thoat oil be
brought."
I nodded to one of the
soldiers, who left the chamber, returning presently with the things that Xodar
had requested. The black kneeled beside the body and, dipping a corner of the
cloth in the thoat oil, rubbed for a moment on the dead face before him, Then
he turned to me with a smile, pointing to his work. I looked and saw that where
Xodar had applied the thoat oil the face was white, as white as mine, and then
Xodar seized the black hair of the corpse and with a sudden wrench tore it all
away, revealing a hairless pate beneath.
Guardsmen and nobles
pressed close about the silent witness upon the marble floor. Many were the
exclamations of astonishment and questioning wonder as Xodar's acts confirmed
the suspicion which he had held.
"A thern!"
whispered Tars Tarkas.
"Worse than that,
I fear," replied Xodar. "But let us see."
With that he drew his
dagger and cut open a locked pouch which had dangled from the thern's harness,
and from it he brought forth a circlet of gold set with a large gem -- it was
the mate to that which I had taken from Sator Throg.
"He was a Holy
Thern," said Xodar. "Fortunate indeed it is for us that he did not
escape."
The officer of the
guard entered the chamber at this juncture.
"My Prince,"
he said, "I have to report that this fellow's companion escaped us. I
think that it was with the connivance of one or more of the men at the gate. I
have ordered them all under arrest."
Xodar handed him the
thoat oil and cloth.
"With this you may
discover the spy among you," he said.
I at once ordered a
secret search within the city, for every Martian noble maintains a secret
service of his own.
A half-hour later the
officer of the guard came again to report. This time it was to confirm our
worst fears -- half the guards at the gate that night had been therns disguised
as red men.
"Come!" I
cried. "We must lose no time. On to Hastor at once. Should the therns
attempt to check us at the southern verge of the ice cap it may result in the
wrecking of all our plans and the total destruction of the expedition."
Ten minutes later we
were speeding through the night toward Hastor, prepared to strike the first
blow for the preservation of Dejah Thoris.
TWO HOURS after leaving
my palace at Helium, or about midnight, Kantos Kan, Xodar, and I arrived at
Hastor. Carthoris, Tars Tarkas, and Hor Vastus had gone directly to Thark upon
another cruiser.
The transports were to
get under way immediately and move slowly south. The fleet of battleships would
overtake them on the morning of the second day.
At Hastor we found all
in readiness, and so perfectly had Kantos Kan planned every detail of the
campaign that within ten minutes of our arrival the first of the fleet had
soared aloft from its dock, and thereafter, at the rate of one a second, the
great ships floated gracefully out into the night to form a long, thin line
which stretched for miles toward the south.
It was not until after
we had entered the cabin of Kantos Kan that I thought to ask the date, for up
to now I was not positive how long I had lain in the pits of Zat Arras. When
Kantos Kan told me, I realized with a pang of dismay that I had misreckoned the
time while I lay in the utter darkness of my cell. Three hundred and sixty-five
days had passed -- it was too late to save Dejah Thoris.
The expedition was no
longer one of rescue but of revenge. I did not remind Kantos Kan of the
terrible fact that ere we could hope to enter the Temple of Issus, the Princess
of Helium would be no more. In so far as I knew she might be already dead, for
I did not know the exact date on which she first viewed Issus.
What now the value of
burdening my friends with my added personal sorrows -- they had shared quite
enough of them with me in the past. Hereafter I would keep my grief to myself,
and so I said nothing to any other of the fact that we were too late. The
expedition could yet do much if it could but teach the people of Barsoom the
facts of the cruel deception that had been worked upon them for countless ages,
and thus save thousands each year from the horrid fate that awaited them at the
conclusion of the voluntary pilgrimage.
If it could open to the
red men the fair Valley Dor it would have accomplished much, and in the Land of
Lost Souls between the Mountains of Otz and the ice barrier were many broad
acres that needed no irrigation to bear rich harvests.
Here at the bottom of a
dying world was the only naturally productive area upon its surface. Here alone
were dews and rains, here alone was an open sea, here was water in plenty; and
all this was but the stamping ground of fierce brutes and from its beauteous
and fertile expanse the wicked remnants of two once mighty races barred all the
other millions of Barsoom. Could I but succeed in once breaking down the
barrier of religious superstition which had kept the red races from this El
Dorado it would be a fitting memorial to the immortal virtues of my Princess --
I should have again served Barsoom and Dejah Thoris' martyrdom would not have
been in vain.
On the morning of the
second day we raised the great fleet of transports and their consorts at the
first flood of dawn, and soon were near enough to exchange signals. I may
mention here that radio-aerograms are seldom if ever used in war time, or for
the transmission of secret dispatches at any time, for as often as one nation
discovers a new cipher, or invents a new instrument for wireless purposes its
neighbours bend every effort until they are able to intercept and translate the
messages. For so long a time has this gone on that practically every
possibility of wireless communication has been exhausted and no nation dares
transmit dispatches of importance in this way.
Tars Tarkas reported
all well with the transports. The battleships passed through to take an
advanced position, and the combined fleets moved slowly over the ice cap,
hugging the surface closely to prevent detection by the therns whose land we
were approaching.
Far in advance of all a
thin line of one-man air scouts protected us from surprise, and on either side
they flanked us, while a smaller number brought up the rear some twenty miles
behind the transports. In this formation we had progressed toward the entrance
to Omean for several hours when one of our scouts returned from the front to
report that the cone-like summit of the entrance was in sight. At almost the
same instant another scout from the left flank came racing toward the flagship.
His very speed bespoke
the importance of his information. Kantos Kan and I awaited him upon the little
forward deck which corresponds with the bridge of earthly battleships. Scarcely
had his tiny flier come to rest upon the broad landing-deck of the flagship ere
he was bounding up the stairway to the deck where we stood.
"A great fleet of
battleships south-south-east, my Prince," he cried. "There must be
several thousands and they are bearing down directly upon us."
"The thern spies
were not in the palace of John Carter for nothing," said Kantos Kan to me.
"Your orders, Prince."
"Dispatch ten
battleships to guard the entrance to Omean, with orders to let no hostile enter
or leave the shaft. That will bottle up the great fleet of the First Born.
"Form the balance
of the battleships into a great V with the apex pointing directly
south-south-east. Order the transports, surrounded by their convoys, to follow
closely in the wake of the battleships until the point of the V has entered the
enemies' line, then the V must open outward at the apex, the battleships of
each leg engage the enemy fiercely and drive him back to form a lane through
his line into which the transports with their convoys must race at top speed
that they may gain a position above the temples and gardens of the therns.
"Here let them
land and teach the Holy Therns such a lesson in ferocious warfare as they will
not forget for countless ages. It had not been my intention to be distracted
from the main issue of the campaign, but we must settle this attack with the
therns once and for all, or there will be no peace for us while our fleet
remains near Dor, and our chances of ever returning to the outer world will be
greatly minimized."
Kantos Kan saluted and
turned to deliver my instructions to his waiting aides. In an incredibly short
space of time the formation of the battleships changed in accordance with my
commands, the ten that were to guard the way to Omean were speeding toward
their destination, and the troopships and convoys were closing up in
preparation for the spurt through the lane.
The order of full speed
ahead was given, the fleet sprang through the air like coursing greyhounds, and
in another moment the ships of the enemy were in full view. They formed a
ragged line as far as the eye could reach in either direction and about three
ships deep. So sudden was our onslaught that they had no time to prepare for
it. It was as unexpected as lightning from a clear sky.
Every phase of my plan
worked splendidly. Our huge ships mowed their way entirely through the line of
thern battlecraft; then the V opened up and a broad lane appeared through which
the transports leaped toward the temples of the therns which could now be
plainly seen glistening in the sunlight. By the time the therns had rallied
from the attack a hundred thousand green warriors were already pouring through
their courts and gardens, while a hundred and fifty thousand others leaned from
low swinging transports to direct their almost uncanny marksmanship upon the
thern soldiery that manned the ramparts, or attempted to defend the temples.
Now the two great
fleets closed in a titanic struggle far above the fiendish din of battle in the
gorgeous gardens of the therns. Slowly the two lines of Helium's battleships
joined their ends, and then commenced the circling within the line of the enemy
which is so marked a characteristic of Barsoomian naval warfare.
Around and around in
each other's tracks moved the ships under Kantos Kan, until at length they
formed nearly a perfect circle. By this time they were moving at high speed so
that they presented a difficult target for the enemy. Broadside after broadside
they delivered as each vessel came in line with the ships of the therns. The
latter attempted to rush in and break up the formation, but it was like
stopping a buzz saw with the bare hand.
From my position on the
deck beside Kantos Kan I saw ship after ship of the enemy take the awful,
sickening dive which proclaims its total destruction. Slowly we manoeuvered our
circle of death until we hung above the gardens where our green warriors were
engaged. The order was passed down for them to embark. Then they rose slowly to
a position within the centre of the circle.
In the meantime the
therns' fire had practically ceased. They had had enough of us and were only
too glad to let us go on our way in peace. But our escape was not to be
encompassed with such ease, for scarcely had we gotten under way once more in
the direction of the entrance to Omean than we saw far to the north a great
black line topping the horizon. It could be nothing other than a fleet of war.
Whose or whither bound,
we could not even conjecture. When they had come close enough to make us out at
all, Kantos Kan's operator received a radio-aerogram, which he immediately
handed to my companion. He read the thing and handed it to me.
"Kantos Kan:"
it read. "Surrender, in the name of the Jeddak of Helium, for you cannot
escape," and it was signed, "Zat Arras."
The therns must have
caught and translated the message almost as soon as did we, for they
immediately renewed hostilities when they realized that we were soon to be set
upon by other enemies.
Before Zat Arras had
approached near enough to fire a shot we were again hotly engaged with the
thern fleet, and as soon as he drew near he too commenced to pour a terrific
fusillade of heavy shot into us. Ship after ship reeled and staggered into
uselessness beneath the pitiless fire that we were undergoing.
The thing could not
last much longer. I ordered the transports to descend again into the gardens of
the therns.
"Wreak your
vengeance to the utmost," was my message to the green allies, "for by
night there will be none left to avenge your wrongs."
Presently I saw the ten
battleships that had been ordered to hold the shaft of Omean. They were
returning at full speed, firing their stern batteries almost continuously.
There could be but one explanation. They were being pursued by another hostile
fleet. Well, the situation could be no worse. The expedition already was
doomed. No man that had embarked upon it would return across that dreary ice
cap. How I wished that I fight face Zat Arras with my long-sword for just an
instant before I died! It was he who had caused our failure.
As I watched the
oncoming ten I saw their pursuers race swiftly into sight. It was another great
fleet; for a moment I could not believe my eyes, but finally I was forced to
admit that the most fatal calamity had overtaken the expedition, for the fleet
I saw was none other than the fleet of the First Born, that should have been
safely bottled up in Omean. What a series of misfortunes and disasters! What
awful fate hovered over me, that I should have been so terribly thwarted at
every angle of my search for my lost love! Could it be possible that the curse
of Issus was upon me! That there was, indeed, some malign divinity in that
hideous carcass! I would not believe it, and, throwing back my shoulders, I ran
to the deck below to join my men in repelling boarders from one of the thern
craft that had grappled us broadside. In the wild lust of hand-to-hand combat
my old dauntless hopefulness returned. And as thern after thern went down
beneath my blade, I could almost feel that we should win success in the end,
even from apparent failure.
My presence among the
men so greatly inspirited them that they fell upon the luckless whites with
such terrible ferocity that within a few moments we had turned the tables upon
them and a second later as we swarmed their own decks I had the satisfaction of
seeing their commander take the long leap from the bows of his vessel in token
of surrender and defeat.
Then I joined Kantos
Kan. He had been watching what had taken place on the deck below, and it seemed
to have given him a new thought. Immediately he passed an order to one of his
officers, and presently the colours of the Prince of Helium broke from every
point of the flagship. A great cheer arose from the men of our own ship, a
cheer that was taken up by every other vessel of our expedition as they in turn
broke my colours from their upper works.
Then Kantos Kan sprang
his coup. A signal legible to every sailor of all the fleets engaged in that
fierce struggle was strung aloft upon the flagship.
"Men of Helium for
the Prince of Helium against all his enemies," it read. Presently my
colours broke from one of Zat Arras' ships. Then from another and another. On
some we could see fierce battles waging between the Zodangan soldiery and the
Heliumetic crews, but eventually the colours of the Prince of Helium floated
above every ship that had followed Zat Arras upon our trail -- only his
flagship flew them not.
Zat Arras had brought
five thousand ships. The sky was black with the three enormous fleets. It was
Helium against the field now, and the fight had settled to countless individual
duels. There could be little or no manoeuvering of fleets in that crowded,
fire-split sky.
Zat Arras' flagship was
close to my own. I could see the thin features of the man from where I stood.
His Zodangan crew was pouring broadside after broadside into us and we were
returning their fire with equal ferocity. Closer and closer came the two
vessels until but a few yards intervened. Grapplers and boarders lined the
contiguous rails of each. We were preparing for the death struggle with our
hated enemy.
There was but a yard
between the two mighty ships as the first grappling irons were hurled. I rushed
to the deck to be with my men as they boarded. Just as the vessels came
together with a slight shock, I forced my way through the lines and was the
first to spring to the deck of Zat Arras' ship. After me poured a yelling,
cheering, cursing throng of Helium's best fighting-men. Nothing could withstand
them in the fever of battle lust which enthralled them.
Down went the Zodangans
before that surging tide of war, and as my men cleared the lower decks I sprang
to the forward deck where stood Zat Arras.
"You are my
prisoner, Zat Arras," I cried. "Yield and you shall have
quarter."
For a moment I could
not tell whether he contemplated acceding to my demand or facing me with drawn
sword. For an instant he stood hesitating, and then throwing down his arms he
turned and rushed to the opposite side of the deck. Before I could overtake him
he had sprung to the rail and hurled himself headforemost into the awful depths
below.
And thus came Zat
Arras, Jed of Zodanga, to his end.
On and on went that
strange battle. The therns and blacks had not combined against us. Wherever
thern ship met ship of the First Born was a battle royal, and in this I thought
I saw our salvation. Wherever messages could be passed between us that could
not be intercepted by our enemies I passed the word that all our vessels were
to withdraw from the fight as rapidly as possible, taking a position to the
west and south of the combatants. I also sent an air scout to the fighting
green men in the gardens below to re-embark, and to the transports to join us.
My commanders were
further instructed than when engaged with an enemy to draw him as rapidly as
possible toward a ship of his hereditary foeman, and by careful manoeuvring to
force the two to engage, thus leaving himself free to withdraw. This stratagem
worked to perfection, and just before the sun went down I had the satisfaction
of seeing all that was left of my once mighty fleet gathered nearly twenty
miles southwest of the still terrific battle between the blacks and whites.
I now transferred Xodar
to another battleship and sent him with all the transports and five thousand
battleships directly overhead to the Temple of Issus. Carthoris and I, with
Kantos Kan, took the remaining ships and headed for the entrance to Omean.
Our plan now was to
attempt to make a combined assault upon Issus at dawn of the following day.
Tars Tarkas with his green warriors and Hor Vastus with the red men, guided by
Xodar, were to land within the garden of Issus or the surrounding plains; while
Carthoris, Kantos Kan, and I were to lead our smaller force from the sea of
Omean through the pits beneath the temple, which Carthoris knew so well.
I now learned for the
first time the cause of my ten ships' retreat from the mouth of the shaft. It
seemed that when they had come upon the shaft the navy of the First Born were
already issuing from its mouth. Fully twenty vessels had emerged, and though
they gave battle immediately in an effort to stem the tide that rolled from the
black pit, the odds against them were too great and they were forced to flee.
With great caution we
approached the shaft, under cover of darkness. At a distance of several miles I
caused the fleet to be halted, and from there Carthoris went ahead alone upon a
one-man flier to reconnoitre. In perhaps half an hour he returned to report
that there was no sign of a patrol boat or of the enemy in any form, and so we
moved swiftly and noiselessly forward once more toward Omean.
At the mouth of the
shaft we stopped again for a moment for all the vessels to reach their
previously appointed stations, then with the flagship I dropped quickly into
the black depths, while one by one the other vessels followed me in quick
succession.
We had decided to stake
all on the chance that we would be able to reach the temple by the subterranean
way and so we left no guard of vessels at the shaft's mouth. Nor would it have
profited us any to have done so, for we did not have sufficient force all told
to have withstood the vast navy of the First Born had they returned to engage
us.
For the safety of our
entrance upon Omean we depended largely upon the very boldness of it, believing
that it would be some little time before the First Born on guard there would
realize that it was an enemy and not their own returning fleet that was
entering the vault of the buried sea.
And such proved to be
the case. In fact, four hundred of my fleet of five hundred rested safely upon
the bosom of Omean before the first shot was fired. The battle was short and
hot, but there could have been but one outcome, for the First Born in the
carelessness of fancied security had left but a handful of ancient and obsolete
hulks to guard their mighty harbour.
It was at Carthoris'
suggestion that we landed our prisoners under guard upon a couple of the larger
islands, and then towed the ships of the First Born to the shaft, where we
managed to wedge a number of them securely in the interior of the great well.
Then we turned on the buoyance rays in the balance of them and let them rise by
themselves to further block the passage to Omean as they came into contact with
the vessels already lodged there.
We now felt that it
would be some time at least before the returning First Born could reach the
surface of Omean, and that we would have ample opportunity to make for the
subterranean passages which lead to Issus. One of the first steps I took was to
hasten personally with a good-sized force to the island of the submarine, which
I took without resistance on the part of the small guard there.
I found the submarine
in its pool, and at once placed a strong guard upon it and the island, where I
remained to wait the coming of Carthoris and the others.
Among the prisoners was
Yersted, commander of the submarine. He recognized me from the three trips that
I had taken with him during my captivity among the First Born.
"How does it
seem," I asked him, "to have the tables turned? To be prisoner of
your erstwhile captive?"
He smiled, a very grim
smile pregnant with hidden meaning.
"It will not be
for long, John Carter," he replied. "We have been expecting you and
we are prepared."
"So it would
appear," I answered, "for you were all ready to become my prisoners
with scarce a blow struck on either side."
"The fleet must
have missed you," he said, "but it will return to Omean, and then
that will be a very different matter -- for John Carter."
"I do not know
that the fleet has missed me as yet," I said, but of course he did not
grasp my meaning, and only looked puzzled.
"Many prisoners
travel to Issus in your grim craft, Yersted?" I asked.
"Very many,"
he assented.
Might you remember one
whom men called Dejah Thoris?"
"Well, indeed, for
her great beauty, and then, too, for the fact that she was wife to the first
mortal that ever escaped from Issus through all the countless ages of her
godhood. And they way that Issus remembers her best as the wife of one and the
mother of another who raised their hands against the Goddess of Life
Eternal."
I shuddered for fear of
the cowardly revenge that I knew Issus might have taken upon the innocent Dejah
Thoris for the sacrilege of her son and her husband.
"And where is
Dejah Thoris now?" I asked, knowing that he would say the words I most
dreaded, but yet I loved her so that I could not refrain from hearing even the
worst about her fate so that it fell from the lips of one who had seen her but
recently. It was to me as though it brought her closer to me.
"Yesterday the
monthly rites of Issus were held," replied Yersted, "and I saw her
then sitting in her accustomed place at the foot of Issus."
"What," I
cried, "she is not dead, then?"
"Why, no,"
replied the black, "it has been no year since she gazed upon the divine
glory of the radiant face of -- "
"No year?" I
interrupted.
"Why, no,"
insisted Yersted. "It cannot have been upward of three hundred and seventy
or eighty days."
A great light burst
upon me. How stupid I had been! I could scarcely retain an outward exhibition
of my great joy. Why had I forgotten the great difference in the length of
Martian and Earthly years! The ten Earth years I had spent upon Barsoom had
encompassed but five years and ninety-six days of Martian time, whose days are
forty-one minutes longer than ours, and whose years number six hundred and
eighty-seven days.
I am in time! I am in
time! The words surged through my brain again and again, until at last I must
have voiced them audibly, for Yersted shook his head.
"In time to save
your Princess?" he asked, and then without waiting for my reply, "No,
John Carter, Issus will not give up her own. She knows that you are coming, and
ere ever a vandal foot is set within the precincts of the Temple of Issus, if
such a calamity should befall, Dejah Thoris will be put away for ever from the
last faint hope of rescue."
"You mean that she
will be killed merely to thwart me?" I asked.
"Not that, other
than as a last resort," he replied. "Hast ever heard of the Temple of
the Sun? It is there that they will put her. It lies far within the inner court
of the Temple of Issus, a little temple that raises a thin spire far above the
spires and minarets of the great temple that surrounds it. Beneath it, in the
ground, there lies the main body of the temple consisting in six hundred and
eighty-seven circular chambers, one below another. To each chamber a single
corridor leads through solid rock from the pits of Issus.
"As the entire
Temple of the Sun revolves once with each revolution of Barsoom about the sun,
but once each year does the entrance to each separate chamber come opposite the
mouth of the corridor which forms its only link to the world without.
"Here Issus puts
those who displease her, but whom she does not care to execute forthwith. Or to
punish a noble of the First Born she may cause him to be placed within a
chamber of the Temple of the Sun for a year. Ofttimes she imprisons an
executioner with the condemned, that death may come in a certain horrible form
upon a given day, or again but enough food is deposited in the chamber to
sustain life but the number of days that Issus has allotted for mental anguish.
"Thus will Dejah
Thoris die, and her fate will be sealed by the first alien foot that crosses
the threshold of Issus."
So I was to be thwarted
in the end, although I had performed the miraculous and come within a few short
moments of my divine Princess, yet was I as far from her as when I stood upon
the banks of the Hudson forty-eight million miles away.
YERSTED'S INFORMATION
convinced me that there was no time to be lost. I must reach the Temple of
Issus secretly before the forces under Tars Tarkas assaulted at dawn. Once
within its hated walls I was positive that I could overcome the guards of Issus
and bear away my Princess, for at my back I would have a force ample for the
occasion.
No sooner had Carthoris
and the others joined me than we commenced the transportation of our men
through the submerged passage to the mouth of the gangways which lead from the
submarine pool at the temple end of the watery tunnel to the pits of Issus.
Many trips were
required, but at last all stood safely together again at the beginning of the
end of our quest. Five thousand strong we were, all seasoned fighting-men of
the most warlike race of the red men of Barsoom.
As Carthoris alone knew
the hidden ways of the tunnels we could not divide the party and attack the
temple at several points at once as would have been most desirable, and so it
was decided that he lead us all as quickly as possible to a point near the
temple's centre.
As we were about to
leave the pool and enter the corridor, an officer called my attention to the
waters upon which the submarine floated. At first they seemed to be merely
agitated as from the movement of some great body beneath the surface, and I at
once conjectured that another submarine was rising to the surface in pursuit of
us; but presently it became apparent that the level of the waters was rising,
not with extreme rapidity, but very surely, and that soon they would overflow
the sides of the pool and submerge the floor of the chamber.
For a moment I did not
fully grasp the terrible import of the slowly rising water. It was Carthoris
who realized the full meaning of the thing -- its cause and the reason for it.
"Haste!" he
cried. "If we delay, we all are lost. The pumps of Omean have been
stopped. They would drown us like rats in a trap. We must reach the upper
levels of the pits in advance of the flood or we shall never reach them.
Come."
"Lead the way,
Carthoris," I cried. "We will follow."
At my command, the
youth leaped into one of the corridors, and in column of twos the soldiers
followed him in good order, each company entering the corridor only at the
command of its dwar, or captain.
Before the last company
filed from the chamber the water was ankle deep, and that the men were nervous
was quite evident. Entirely unaccustomed to water except in quantities
sufficient for drinking and bathing purposes the red Martians instinctively
shrank from it in such formidable depths and menacing activity. That they were
undaunted while it swirled and eddied about their ankles, spoke well for their
bravery and their discipline.
I was the last to leave
the chamber of the submarine, and as I followed the rear of the column toward
the corridor, I moved through water to my knees. The corridor, too, was flooded
to the same depth, for its floor was on a level with the floor of the chamber
from which it led, nor was there any perceptible rise for many yards.
The march of the troops
through the corridor was as rapid as was consistent with the number of men that
moved through so narrow a passage, but it was not ample to permit us to gain
appreciably on the pursuing tide. As the level of the passage rose, so, too,
did the waters rise until it soon became apparent to me, who brought up the
rear, that they were gaining rapidly upon us. I could understand the reason for
this, as with the narrowing expanse of Omean as the waters rose toward the apex
of its dome, the rapidity of its rise would increase in inverse ratio to the
ever-lessening space to be filled.
Long ere the last of
the column could hope to reach the upper pits which lay above the danger point
I was convinced that the waters would surge after us in overwhelming volume,
and that fully half the expedition would be snuffed out.
As I cast about for
some means of saving as many as possible of the doomed men, I saw a diverging
corridor which seemed to rise at a steep angle at my right. The waters were now
swirling about my waist. The men directly before me were quickly becoming panic-stricken.
Something must be done at once or they would rush forward upon their fellows in
a mad stampede that would result in trampling down hundreds beneath the flood
and eventually clogging the passage beyond any hope of retreat for those in
advance.
Raising my voice to its
utmost, I shouted my command to the dwars ahead of me.
"Call back the
last twenty-five utans," I shouted. "Here seems a way of escape. Turn
back and follow me."
My orders were obeyed
by nearer thirty utans, so that some three thousand men came about and hastened
into the teeth of the flood to reach the corridor up which I directed them.
As the first dwar
passed in with his utan I cautioned him to listen closely for my commands, and
under no circumstances to venture into the open, or leave the pits for the
temple proper until I should have come up with him, "or you know that I
died before I could reach you."
The officer saluted and
left me. The men filed rapidly past me and entered the diverging corridor which
I hoped would lead to safety. The water rose breast high. Men stumbled,
floundered, and went down. Many I grasped and set upon their feet again, but
alone the work was greater than I could cope with. Soldiers were being swept
beneath the boiling torrent, never to rise. At length the dwar of the 10th utan
took a stand beside me. He was a valorous soldier, Gur Tus by name, and
together we kept the now thoroughly frightened troops in the semblance of order
and rescued many that would have drowned otherwise.
Djor Kantos, son of
Kantos Kan, and a padwar of the fifth utan joined us when his utan reached the
opening through which the men were fleeing. Thereafter not a man was lost of
all the hundreds that remained to pass from the main corridor to the branch.
As the last utan was
filing past us the waters had risen until they surged about our necks, but we
clasped hands and stood our ground until the last man had passed to the
comparative safety of the new passageway. Here we found an immediate and steep
ascent, so that within a hundred yards we had reached a point above the waters.
For a few minutes we
continued rapidly up the steep grade, which I hoped would soon bring us quickly
to the upper pits that let into the Temple of Issus. But I was to meet with a
cruel disappointment.
Suddenly I heard a cry
of "fire" far ahead, followed almost at once by cries of terror and
the loud commands of dwars and padwars who were evidently attempting to direct
their men away from some grave danger. At last the report came back to us.
"They have fired the pits ahead." "We are hemmed in by flames in
front and flood behind." "Help, John Carter; we are
suffocating," and then there swept back upon us at the rear a wave of
dense smoke that sent us, stumbling and blinded, into a choking retreat.
There was naught to do
other than seek a new avenue of escape. The fire and smoke were to be feared a
thousand times over the water, and so I seized upon the first gallery which led
out of and up from the suffocating smoke that was engulfing us.
Again I stood to one
side while the soldiers hastened through on the new way. Some two thousand must
have passed at a rapid run, when the stream ceased, but I was not sure that all
had been rescued who had not passed the point of origin of the flames, and so
to assure myself that no poor devil was left behind to die a horrible death,
unsuccoured, I ran quickly up the gallery in the direction of the flames which
I could now see burning with a dull glow far ahead.
It was hot and stifling
work, but at last I reached a point where the fire lit up the corridor
sufficiently for me to see that no soldier of Helium lay between me and the
conflagration -- what was in it or upon the far side I could not know, nor
could any man have passed through that seething hell of chemicals and lived to
learn.
Having satisfied my
sense of duty, I turned and ran rapidly back to the corridor through which my
men had passed. To my horror, however, I found that my retreat in this
direction had been blocked -- across the mouth of the corridor stood a massive
steel grating that had evidently been lowered from its resting-place above for
the purpose of effectually cutting off my escape.
That our principal
movements were known to the First Born I could not have doubted, in view of the
attack of the fleet upon us the day before, nor could the stopping of the pumps
of Omean at the psychological moment have been due to chance, nor the starting
of a chemical combustion within the one corridor through which we were
advancing upon the Temple of Issus been due to aught than well-calculated
design.
And now the dropping of
the steel gate to pen me effectually between fire and flood seemed to indicate
that invisible eyes were upon us at every moment. What chance had I, then, to
rescue Dejah Thoris were I to be compelled to fight foes who never showed
themselves. A thousand times I berated myself for being drawn into such a trap
as I might have known these pits easily could be. Now I saw that it would have
been much better to have kept our force intact and made a concerted attack upon
the temple from the valley side, trusting to chance and our great fighting
ability to have overwhelmed the First Born and compelled the safe delivery of
Dejah Thoris to me.
The smoke from the fire
was forcing me further and further back down the corridor toward the waters
which I could hear surging through the darkness. With my men had gone the last
torch, nor was this corridor lighted by the radiance of phosphorescent rock as
were those of the lower levels. It was this fact that assured me that I was not
far from the upper pits which lie directly beneath the temple.
Finally I felt the
lapping waters about my feet. The smoke was thick behind me. My suffering was
intense. There seemed but one thing to do, and that to choose the easier death
which confronted me, and so I moved on down the corridor until the cold waters
of Omean closed about me, and I swam on through utter blackness toward -- what?
The instinct of
self-preservation is strong even when one, unafraid and in the possession of
his highest reasoning faculties, knows that death -- positive and unalterable
-- lies just ahead. And so I swam slowly on, waiting for my head to touch the
top of the corridor, which would mean that I had reached the limit of my flight
and the point where I must sink for ever to an unmarked grave.
But to my surprise I
ran against a blank wall before I reached a point where the waters came to the
roof of the corridor. Could I be mistaken? I felt around. No, I had come to the
main corridor, and still there was a breathing space between the surface of the
water and the rocky ceiling above. And then I turned up the main corridor in
the direction that Carthoris and the head of the column had passed a half-hour
before. On and on I swam, my heart growing lighter at every stroke, for I knew
that I was approaching closer and closer to the point where there would be no
chance that the waters ahead could be deeper than they were about me. I was
positive that I must soon feel the solid floor beneath my feet again and that
once more my chance would come to reach the Temple of Issus and the side of the
fair prisoner who languished there.
But even as hope was at
its highest I felt the sudden shock of contact as my head struck the rocks
above. The worst, then, had come to me. I had reached one of those rare places
where a Martian tunnel dips suddenly to a lower level. Somewhere beyond I knew
that it rose again, but of what value was that to me, since I did not know how
great the distance that it maintained a level entirely beneath the surface of
the water!
There was but a single
forlorn hope, and I took it. Filling my lungs with air, I dived beneath the
surface and swam through the inky, icy blackness on and on along the submerged
gallery. Time and time again I rose with upstretched hand, only to feel the
disappointing rocks close above me.
Not for much longer
would my lungs withstand the strain upon them. I felt that I must soon succumb,
nor was there any retreating now that I had gone this far. I knew positively
that I could never endure to retrace my path now to the point from which I had
felt the waters close above my head. Death stared me in the face, nor ever can
I recall a time that I so distinctly felt the icy breath from his dead lips
upon my brow.
One more frantic effort
I made with my fast ebbing strength. Weakly I rose for the last time -- my
tortured lungs gasped for the breath that would fill them with a strange and
numbing element, but instead I felt the revivifying breath of life-giving air
surge through my starving nostrils into my dying lungs. I was saved.
A few more strokes
brought me to a point where my feet touched the floor, and soon thereafter I
was above the water level entirely, and racing like mad along the corridor
searching for the first doorway that would lead me to Issus. If I could not
have Dejah Thoris again I was at least determined to avenge her death, nor
would any life satisfy me other than that of the fiend incarnate who was the
cause of such immeasurable suffering upon Barsoom.
Sooner than I had
expected I came to what appeared to me to be a sudden exit into the temple
above. It was at the right side of the corridor, which ran on, probably, to
other entrances to the pile above.
To me one point was as
good as another. What knew I where any of them led! And so without waiting to
be again discovered and thwarted, I ran quickly up the short, steep incline and
pushed open the doorway at its end.
The portal swung slowly
in, and before it could be slammed against me I sprang into the chamber beyond.
Although not yet dawn, the room was brilliantly lighted. Its sole occupant lay
prone upon a low couch at the further side, apparently in sleep. From the
hangings and sumptuous furniture of the room I judged it to be a living-room of
some priestess, possibly of Issus herself.
At the thought the
blood tingled through my veins. What, indeed, if fortune had been kind enough
to place the hideous creature alone and unguarded in my hands. With her as
hostage I could force acquiescence to my every demand. Cautiously I approached
the recumbent figure, on noiseless feet. Closer and closer I came to it, but I
had crossed but little more than half the chamber when the figure stirred, and,
as I sprang, rose and faced me.
At first an expression
of terror overspread the features of the woman who confronted me -- then
startled incredulity -- hope -- thanksgiving.
My heart pounded within
my breast as I advanced toward her -- tears came to my eyes -- and the words
that would have poured forth in a perfect torrent choked in my throat as I
opened my arms and took into them once more the woman I loved -- Dejah Thoris,
Princess of Helium.
"JOHN CARTER, John
Carter," she sobbed, with her dear head upon my shoulder; "even now I
can scarce believe the witness of my own eyes. When the girl, Thuvia, told me
that you had returned to Barsoom, I listened, but I could not understand, for
it seemed that such happiness would be impossible for one who had suffered so
in silent loneliness for all these long years. At last, when I realized that it
was truth, and then came to know the awful place in which I was held prisoner,
I learned to doubt that even you could reach me here.
"As the days
passed, and moon after moon went by without bringing even the faintest rumour
of you, I resigned myself to my fate. And now that you have come, scarce can I
believe it. For an hour I have heard the sounds of conflict within the palace.
I knew not what they meant, but I have hoped against hope that it might be the
men of Helium headed by my Prince.
"And tell me, what
of Carthoris, our son?"
"He was with me
less than an hour since, Dejah Thoris," I replied. "It must have been
he whose men you have heard battling within the precincts of the temple.
"Where is
Issus?" I asked suddenly.
Dejah Thoris shrugged
her shoulders.
"She sent me under
guard to this room just before the fighting began within the temple halls. She
said that she would send for me later. She seemed very angry and somewhat
fearful. Never have I seen her act in so uncertain and almost terrified a
manner. Now I know that it must have been because she had learned that John
Carter, Prince of Helium, was approaching to demand an accounting of her for
the imprisonment of his Princess."
The sounds of conflict,
the clash of arms, the shouting and the hurrying of many feet came to us from
various parts of the temple. I knew that I was needed there, but I dared not
leave Dejah Thoris, nor dared I take her with me into the turmoil and danger of
battle.
At last I bethought me
of the pits from which I had just emerged. Why not secrete her there until I
could return and fetch her away in safety and for ever from this awful place. I
explained my plan to her.
For a moment she clung
more closely to me.
"I cannot bear to
be parted from you now, even for a moment, John Carter," she said. "I
shudder at the thought of being alone again where that terrible creature might
discover me. You do not know her. None can imagine her ferocious cruelty who
has not witnessed her daily acts for over half a year. It has taken me nearly
all this time to realize even the things that I have seen with my own
eyes."
"I shall not leave
you, then, my Princess," I replied.
She was silent for a
moment, then she drew my face to hers and kissed me.
"Go, John
Carter," she said. "Our son is there, and the soldiers of Helium,
fighting for the Princess of Helium. Where they are you should be. I must not
think of myself now, but of them and of my husband's duty. I may not stand in
the way of that. Hide me in the pits, and go."
I led her to the door
through which I had entered the chamber from below. There I pressed her dear
form to me, and then, though it tore my heart to do it, and filled me only with
the blackest shadows of terrible foreboding, I guided her across the threshold,
kissed her once again, and closed the door upon her.
Without hesitating
longer, I hurried from the chamber in the direction of the greatest tumult.
Scarce half a dozen chambers had I traversed before I came upon the theatre of
a fierce struggle. The blacks were massed at the entrance to a great chamber
where they were attempting to block the further progress of a body of red men
toward the inner sacred precincts of the temple.
Coming from within as I
did, I found myself behind the blacks, and, without waiting to even calculate
their numbers or the foolhardiness of my venture, I charged swiftly across the
chamber and fell upon them from the rear with my keen long-sword.
As I struck the first
blow I cried aloud, "For Helium!" And then I rained cut after cut
upon the surprised warriors, while the reds without took heart at the sound of
my voice, and with shouts of "John Carter! John Carter!" redoubled
their efforts so effectually that before the blacks could recover from their
temporary demoralization their ranks were broken and the red men had burst into
the chamber.
The fight within that
room, had it had but a competent chronicler, would go down in the annals of
Barsoom as a historic memorial to the grim ferocity of her warlike people. Five
hundred men fought there that day, the black men against the red. No man asked
quarter or gave it. As though by common assent they fought, as though to
determine once and for all their right to live, in accordance with the law of
the survival of the fittest.
I think we all knew
that upon the outcome of this battle would hinge for ever the relative
positions of these two races upon Barsoom. It was a battle between the old and
the new, but not for once did I question the outcome of it. With Carthoris at
my side I fought for the red men of Barsoom and for their total emancipation
from the throttling bondage of a hideous superstition.
Back and forth across
the room we surged, until the floor was ankle deep in blood, and dead men lay
so thickly there that half the time we stood upon their bodies as we fought. As
we swung toward the great windows which overlooked the gardens of Issus a sight
met my gaze which sent a wave of exultation over me.
"Look!" I
cried. "Men of the First Born, look!"
For an instant the
fighting ceased, and with one accord every eye turned in the direction I had
indicated, and the sight they saw was one no man of the First Born had ever
imagined could be.
Across the gardens,
from side to side, stood a wavering line of black warriors, while beyond them
and forcing them ever back was a great horde of green warriors astride their
mighty thoats. And as we watched, one, fiercer and more grimly terrible than
his fellows, rode forward from the rear, and as he came he shouted some fierce
command to his terrible legion.
It was Tars Tarkas,
Jeddak of Thark, and as he couched his great forty-foot metal-shod lance we saw
his warriors do likewise. Then it was that we interpreted his command. Twenty
yards now separated the green men from the black line. Another word from the great
Thark, and with a wild and terrifying battle-cry the green warriors charged.
For a moment the black line held, but only for a moment -- then the fearsome
beasts that bore equally terrible riders passed completely through it.
After them came utan
upon utan of red men. The green horde broke to surround the temple. The red men
charged for the interior, and then we turned to continue our interrupted
battle; but our foes had vanished.
My first thought was of
Dejah Thoris. Calling to Carthoris that I had found his mother, I started on a
run toward the chamber where I had left her, with my boy close beside me. After
us came those of our little force who had survived the bloody conflict.
The moment I entered
the room I saw that some one had been there since I had left. A silk lay upon
the floor. It had not been there before. There were also a dagger and several
metal ornaments strewn about as though torn from their wearer in a struggle.
But worst of all, the door leading to the pits where I had hidden my Princess
was ajar.
With a bound I was
before it, and, thrusting it open, rushed within. Dejah Thoris had vanished. I
called her name aloud again and again, but there was no response. I think in
that instant I hovered upon the verge of insanity. I do not recall what I said
or did, but I know that for an instant I was seized with the rage of a maniac.
"Issus!" I
cried. "Issus! Where is Issus? Search the temple for her, but let no man
harm her but John Carter. Carthoris, where are the apartments of Issus?"
"This way,"
cried the boy, and, without waiting to know that I had heard him, he dashed off
at breakneck speed, further into the bowels of the temple. As fast as he went,
however, I was still beside him, urging him on to greater speed.
At last we came to a
great carved door, and through this Carthoris dashed, a foot ahead of me.
Within, we came upon such a scene as I had witnessed within the temple once
before -- the throne of Issus, with the reclining slaves, and about it the
ranks of soldiery.
We did not even give
the men a chance to draw, so quickly were we upon them. With a single cut I
struck down two in the front rank. And then by the mere weight and momentum of
my body, I rushed completely through the two remaining ranks and sprang upon
the dais beside the carved sorapus throne.
The repulsive creature,
squatting there in terror, attempted to escape me and leap into a trap behind
her. But this time I was not to be outwitted by any such petty subterfuge.
Before she had half arisen I had grasped her by the arm, and then, as I saw the
guard starting to make a concerted rush upon me from all sides, I whipped out
my dagger and, holding it close to that vile breast, ordered them to halt.
"Back!" I
cried to them. "Back! The first black foot that is planted upon this
platform sends my dagger into Issus' heart."
For an instant they
hesitated. Then an officer ordered them back, while from the outer corridor
there swept into the throne room at the heels of my little party of survivors a
full thousand red men under Kantos Kan, Hor Vastus, and Xodar.
"Where is Dejah
Thoris?" I cried to the thing within my hands.
For a moment her eyes
roved wildly about the scene beneath her. I think that it took a moment for the
true condition to make any impression upon her -- she could not at first
realize that the temple had fallen before the assault of men of the outer
world. When she did, there must have come, too, a terrible realization of what
it meant to her -- the loss of power -- humiliation -- the exposure of the
fraud and imposture which she had for so long played upon her own people.
There was just one
thing needed to complete the reality of the picture she was seeing, and that
was added by the highest noble of her realm -- the high priest of her religion
-- the prime minister of her government.
"Issus, Goddess of
Death, and of Life Eternal," he cried, "arise in the might of thy
righteous wrath and with one single wave of thy omnipotent hand strike dead thy
blasphemers! Let not one escape. Issus, thy people depend upon thee. Daughter
of the Lesser Moon, thou only art all-powerful. Thou only canst save thy
people. I am done. We await thy will. Strike!"
And then it was that
she went mad. A screaming, gibbering maniac writhed in my grasp. It bit and
clawed and scratched in impotent fury. And then it laughed a weird and terrible
laughter that froze the blood. The slave girls upon the dais shrieked and
cowered away. And the thing jumped at them and gnashed its teeth and then spat
upon them from frothing lips. God, but it was a horrid sight.
Finally, I shook the
thing, hoping to recall it for a moment to rationality.
"Where is Dejah
Thoris?" I cried again.
The awful creature in
my grasp mumbled inarticulately for a moment, then a sudden gleam of cunning
shot into those hideous, close-set eyes.
"Dejah Thoris?
Dejah Thoris?" and then that shrill, unearthly laugh pierced our ears once
more.
"Yes, Dejah Thoris
-- I know. And Thuvia, and Phaidor, daughter of Matai Shang. They each love
John Carter. Ha-ah! but it is droll. Together for a year they will meditate
within the Temple of the Sun, but ere the year is quite gone there will be no
more food for them. Ho-oh! what divine entertainment," and she licked the
froth from her cruel lips. "There will be no more food -- except each
other. Ha-ah! Ha-ah!"
The horror of the
suggestion nearly paralysed me. To this awful fate the creature within my power
had condemned my Princess. I trembled in the ferocity of my rage. As a terrier
shakes a rat I shook Issus, Goddess of Life Eternal.
"Countermand your
orders!" I cried. "Recall the condemned. Haste, or you die!"
"It is too late.
Ha-ah! Ha-ah!" and then she commenced her gibbering and shrieking again.
Almost of its own
volition, my dagger flew up above that putrid heart. But something stayed my
hand, and I am now glad that it did. It were a terrible thing to have struck
down a woman with one's own hand. But a fitter fate occurred to me for this
false deity.
"First Born,"
I cried, turning to those who stood within the chamber, "you have seen
to-day the impotency of Issus -- the gods are impotent. Issus is no god. She is
a cruel and wicked old woman, who has deceived and played upon you for ages.
Take her. John Carter, Prince of Helium, would not contaminate his hand with
her blood," and with that I pushed the raving beast, whom a short
half-hour before a whole world had worshipped as divine, from the platform of
her throne into the waiting clutches of her betrayed and vengeful people.
Spying Xodar among the
officers of the red men, I called him to lead me quickly to the Temple of the
Sun, and, without waiting to learn what fate the First Born would wreak upon
their goddess, I rushed from the chamber with Xodar, Carthoris, Hor Vastus,
Kantos Kan, and a score of other red nobles.
The black led us
rapidly through the inner chambers of the temple, until we stood within the
central court -- a great circular space paved with a transparent marble of
exquisite whiteness. Before us rose a golden temple wrought in the most wondrous
and fanciful designs, inlaid with diamond, ruby, sapphire, turquoise, emerald,
and the thousand nameless gems of Mars, which far transcend in loveliness and
purity of ray the most priceless stones of Earth.
"This way,"
cried Xodar, leading us toward the entrance to a tunnel which opened in the
courtyard beside the temple. Just as we were on the point of descending we
heard a deep-toned roar burst from the Temple of Issus, which we had but just
quitted, and then a red man, Djor Kantos, padwar of the fifth utan, broke from
a nearby gate, crying to us to return.
"The blacks have
fired the temple," he cried. "In a thousand places it is burning now.
Haste to the outer gardens, or you are lost."
As he spoke we saw
smoke pouring from a dozen windows looking out upon the courtyard of the Temple
of the Sun, and far above the highest minaret of Issus hung an ever-growing
pall of smoke.
"Go back! Go
back!" I cried to those who had accompanied me. "The way! Xodar; point
the way and leave me. I shall reach my Princess yet."
"Follow me, John
Carter," replied Xodar, and without waiting for my reply he dashed down
into the tunnel at our feet. At his heels I ran down through a half-dozen tiers
of galleries, until at last he led me along a level floor at the end of which I
discerned a lighted chamber.
Massive bars blocked
our further progress, but beyond I saw her -- my incomparable Princess, and
with her were Thuvia and Phaidor. When she saw me she rushed toward the bars
that separated us. Already the chamber had turned upon its slow way so far that
but a portion of the opening in the temple wall was opposite the barred end of
the corridor. Slowly the interval was closing. In a short time there would be
but a tiny crack, and then even that would be closed, and for a long Barsoomian
year the chamber would slowly revolve until once more for a brief day the
aperture in its wall would pass the corridor's end.
But in the meantime
what horrible things would go on within that chamber!
"Xodar!" I
cried. "Can no power stop this awful revolving thing? Is there none who
holds the secret of these terrible bars?"
"None, I fear,
whom we could fetch in time, though I shall go and make the attempt. Wait for
me here."
After he had left I
stood and talked with Dejah Thoris, and she stretched her dear hand through
those cruel bars that I might hold it until the last moment.
Thuvia and Phaidor came
close also, but when Thuvia saw that we would be alone she withdrew to the
further side of the chamber. Not so the daughter of Matai Shang.
"John
Carter," she said, "this be the last time that you shall see any of
us. Tell me that you love me, that I may die happy."
"I love only the
Princess of Helium," I replied quietly. "I am sorry, Phaidor, but it
is as I have told you from the beginning."
She bit her lip and
turned away, but not before I saw the black and ugly scowl she turned upon
Dejah Thoris. Thereafter she stood a little way apart, but not so far as I
should have desired, for I had many little confidences to impart to my
long-lost love.
For a few minutes we
stood thus talking in low tones. Ever smaller and smaller grew the opening. In
a short time now it would be too small even to permit the slender form of my
Princess to pass. Oh, why did not Xodar haste. Above we could hear the faint
echoes of a great tumult. It was the multitude of black and red and green men
fighting their way through the fire from the burning Temple of Issus.
A draught from above
brought the fumes of smoke to our nostrils. As we stood waiting for Xodar the
smoke became thicker and thicker. Presently we heard shouting at the far end of
the corridor, and hurrying feet.
"Come back, John
Carter, come back!" cried a voice, "even the pits are burning."
In a moment a dozen men
broke through the now blinding smoke to my side. There was Carthoris, and
Kantos Kan, and Hor Vastus, and Xodar, with a few more who had followed me to
the temple court.
"There is no hope,
John Carter," cried Xodar. "The keeper of the keys is dead and his
keys are not upon his carcass. Our only hope is to quench this conflagration
and trust to fate that a year will find your Princess alive and well. I have
brought sufficient food to last them. When this crack closes no smoke can reach
them, and if we hasten to extinguish the flames I believe they will be
safe."
"Go, then,
yourself and take these others with you," I replied. "I shall remain
here beside my Princess until a merciful death releases me from my anguish. I
care not to live."
As I spoke Xodar had
been tossing a great number of tiny cans within the prison cell. The remaining
crack was not over an inch in width a moment later. Dejah Thoris stood as close
to it as she could, whispering words of hope and courage to me, and urging me
to save myself.
Suddenly beyond her I
saw the beautiful face of Phaidor contorted into an expression of malign
hatred. As my eyes met hers she spoke.
"Think not, John
Carter, that you may so lightly cast aside the love of Phaidor, daughter of
Matai Shang. Nor ever hope to hold thy Dejah Thoris in thy arms again. Wait you
the long, long year; but know that when the waiting is over it shall be
Phaidor's arms which shall welcome you -- not those of the Princess of Helium.
Behold, she dies!"
And as she finished
speaking I saw her raise a dagger on high, and then I saw another figure. It
was Thuvia's. As the dagger fell toward the unprotected breast of my love,
Thuvia was almost between them. A blinding gust of smoke blotted out the
tragedy within that fearsome cell -- a shriek rang out, a single shriek, as the
dagger fell.
The smoke cleared away,
but we stood gazing upon a blank wall. The last crevice had closed, and for a
long year that hideous chamber would retain its secret from the eyes of men.
They urged me to leave.
"In a moment it
will be too late," cried Xodar. "There is, in fact, but a bare chance
that we can come through to the outer garden alive even now. I have ordered the
pumps started, and in five minutes the pits will be flooded. If we would not
drown like rats in a trap we must hasten above and make a dash for safety
through the burning temple."
"Go," I urged
them. "Let me die here beside my Princess -- there is no hope or happiness
elsewhere for me. When they carry her dear body from that terrible place a year
hence let them find the body of her lord awaiting her."
Of what happened after
that I have only a confused reccollection. It seems as though I struggled with
many men, and then that I was picked bodily from the ground and borne away. I
do not know. I have never asked, nor has any other who was there that day
intruded on my sorrow or recalled to my mind the occurrences which they know
could but at best reopen the terrible wound within my heart.
Ah! If I could but know
one thing, what a burden of suspense would be lifted from my shoulders! But
whether the assassin's dagger reached one fair bosom or another, only time will
divulge.